ARRY TURTL "One of the geniuses of this cleman SCIENCE FICTION AGE *MA- E 0 ing field" INTO THE HARKNESS INTO TIRE DARKNESS HARRY TURTLEDOVE I I I ---------- E A R T H L I G H T LONDON - SYDNEY - NEW YORK - TOKYO - SINGAPORE - TORONTO www.earthlight.co.uk First published in Great Britain by Earthlight, 1999 An imprint of Simon & Schuster UK Ltd A Viacom Company Copyright (0 Harry Turtledove, 1999 This book is copyright under the Berne Convention No reproduction without permission 9) and (0 1998 Simon & Schuster Inc. All rights reserved. Earthlight & Design is a registered trademark ofSimon & Schuster Inc. The right of Harry Turtledove to be identified as author of this work has been asserted in accordance with sections 77 and 78 ofthe Copyright Designs and Patents Act, 1988. 1 3 5 7 9 10 8 6 4 2 Simon & Schuster UK Ltd Africa House 64-78 Kingsway London WC213 6AH Su-non & Schuster Australia Sydney A CIP catalogue record for this book is available from the British Library. ISBN 0-684-85825-8 This book is a work offiction. Names, characters, places and incidents either are products ofthe author's imagination or are used fictitiously. Any resemblance to actual people living or dead, events or locales is entirely coincidental. Typeset by SX Composing DTP, Rayleigh, Essex Printed and bound in Great Britain by The Bath Press, Bath MAP Fe , ?I - V6,t) GREAT NORTHERN SEA Equator -P- CAPE HADH FARIS AJRAN BAY OF AJLUN A A UNKERLANT Derlavai ow IRDUM*?' OFOR"llc 0 OYNCllTUNR0 ), '0 T.9/*GOZZO SOMMERDAS OPFREND JGR' W ARDN~ L.AUTE~TALO *HZWITERNE 'g-, TIG ELSUNG/ILZUNG 0 MIDLUM 4 MOUNTAINS OLEHESTEN COTTBUS HALFANG TANNDRODA* OASPANG T //~ - GiFHopN ~ e DUeRWANGENO 1 0 GARTZ ANDLAUO ZOSSENO0 HERBORN OLOHR PIRMASENS OF GRELZ BOTH NARROW SEA an A A~\ GARELIAN OCEAN MDUNTAINS 00 ALVI RE710 R. *VENTSPILS *PRIEKULE OZA ADUTISKISO 9TYTUVENA.I PAREN 41111AII L, T, BOTHNIAN OCEAN STRAIT OF VALM I ERA IHLANKI SORONG LE~CIU -\-n", AL-M 1% ALI U OBUDA I JIfISOARA ~ACENI IBM MIZPAH N A", - DRAMATIS PERSONAE Algan,e Alardo Alcina Balastro Balozio Bernbo* Borso Cilandro Corbeo Dalinda Domiziano Dudone Elio Evadne Falsirone Fiametta Frontino Gabrina Galafrone Ippalca Ivone Larbino Lurcanio Mainardo Martusino Mezentio Mosco Ornbruno Oraste Duke of Bari Gardener in Tn*can*co Marquis; Algarvian rminister to Zuwayza Man of Kauman blood in Tricarico Constable in Tricarico Corm-nandant of dragon farm outside Trapani Colonel of footsoldiers near Tricarico Dragonflier in Sabrino's wing Gardener in Tricaiico Captain-squadron commander in Sabrino's wing King Mezentio's predecessor Lieutenant in Tealdo's regiment Kaunian woman in Tricarico; Falsirone's wife Kaunian hair stylist in Tn*can'co; Evadne's husband Courtesan in Tn'can'co Warder in Tn*carico Slattern in Tricarico Captain replacing Larbino Algarvian noblewoman Grand duke commanding Alga ian forces in Valmiera Captain in Tealdo's regiment Count and colonel occupying P kule Mezentio's brother, named King ofJelgava P i ~anufi .ck I Thief in Trican'co King of Algarve Captain; Colonel Lurcanio's adjutant Colonel commanding officer of Tealdo's regiment Constable in Tricarico Orosio Senior lieutenant in Sabrino's wing Panfilo Sergeant in Tealdo's regiment Pesaro Constabulary sergeant in Tricanico Procla Gardener in Trican*co Sabrino* Count and colonel of dragonfliers Saffi Constabulary sketch artist in Tricarico Sasso Constabulary captain in Tricanico Spinello Major commanding occupiers in Oyngestun Tealdo* Common soldier Trasone Common soldier; Tealdo's friend Forthweg Agmund Master of Algarvian, Gromheort Arnulf Firstman in village in eastern Forthweg Bede Master of classical Kaunian, Gromheort Beocca Leofslg's squadmate Bri'vibas Vanal's grandfather Brorda Count of Gromheort Burgred Laborer in Leofsig's gang Ceolnoth Magecraft master at Ealstan and Sidroc's academy Conberge Ealstan and Leofsig's sister Cynfrid Brigadier; senior offiter in captives' camp Ealstan* Student in Gromheort; Leofsig's younger brother Elfryth Ealstan and Leofsig, and Conberge's mother Elfsig Felgilde's father Felgilde Leofsig's girlfriend Frithstan Professor of ancient history Gutauskas Kauman war captive Hengist Sidroc's father; Hestan's brother Hestan Ealstan, Leofsig, and Conberge's father - a bookkeeper Leofslg* Soldier in King Penda's levy; Ealstan's older brother Merwit War captive Odda One of Ealstan's classmates Osgar Master of herblore in Gromheort Penda King of Forthweg Sidroc Ealstan's first cousin Swithulf Headmaster of Ealstan and Sidroc's academy I I i Tamulis Vanai* Womer Wulfher Gyongyos Arpad Borsos Gergely Horthy Istvan* jokai Kisfaludy Kun Szonyi Turul The Ice People Doeg jelgava Adomu Ausra Balozhu Donalitu Dzimavu Laitsina Snu*lsu Talsu* Traku Vartu Kuusamo Alkio Elimaki Ilmarinen Kaumian apothecary in Oyngestun Young Kaunian woman in Forthweg Linen merchant in Groniheort Ealstan's uncle Ekrekek (King) of Gyongyos Dowser on Obuda Borsos's wife Gyongyosian minister to Zuwayza Common soldier on island of Obuda Sergeant in Istvan's company Major in Istvan's battalion Soldier on Obuda; former mage's apprentice Soldier on Obuda Dragonkeeper Caravan master Colonel of Talsu's regiment, replacing Dzirnavu Talsu's younger sister Colonel commanding Talsu's regiment, replacing Adomu King ofjelgava Count and colonel of Talsu's regiment Talsu's mother Talsu's friend Common soldier in Bratanu Mountains Talsu's father, a tailor Colonel Dzirnavu's servant Theoretical sorcerer; Raahe's husband Pekka's sister Raffish elderly master theoretical sorcerer joromen One of the Seven Princes of Kuusamo Leino Pekka's husband; a practical mage Olavin Eliruaki's husband - a banker Pekka* Professor of theoretical sorcery, Kajaam City College Pulls Theoretical sorcerer Raahe Theoretical sorcerer; Alklo's wife Risto Admiral fighting in the Bothnian Ocean Sluntio Elderly master theoretical sorcerer Uto Pekka and Leino's son Lq~oas Brinco Secretary to Grandmaster of Lagoan Guild of Mages Ebastiao Naval captain in Setubal Fernao* First-rank mage Pinhiero Grandmaster of the Lagoan Guild of Mages Ramalho Naval lieutenant in Setubal Ribiero Naval commodore in Setubal Rogelio Captain of the Leopardess Shelomith A spy Sibitt Burebistu King of Sibiu Cornelu* Commander and leviathan-rider, Sibian navy Costache Cornelu's wife Delfirm Commodore, Sibian navy Propatriu Captain of the Impaler Vitor King of Sibiu Unkerlant Agen A peasant in Zossen Annore Garivald's wife Ansovald Unkerlanter minister to Zuwayza Berthar One of Leudast's squadmates , Dagulf A peasant in Zossen; Ganivald's friend Droctulf General commanding Unkerlanter attack on Zuwayza Garivald* Unkerlanter peasant in the village of Zossen Gernot Soldier in Leudast's squad in Forthweg I Gurmun Herka Herpo Huk Ibert Kyot Leuba Leudast* Magnulf Merovec Nantwin Rathar* Roflanz Swenimel Syrivald Trudulf Uote Urgan Waddo Werpin Wisgard Zaban Valmiera Bauska Enkuru Erglyu. Gainibu Gedominu. Kestu Krasta* Marstalu Merkela Raunu Rudninku Skarnu* Valnu. Droctulf s successor in command in Zuwayza Firstman Waddo's wife A traveling spice seller Soldier in Leudast's squad in Forthweg Deputy foreign minister Swernmel's deceased twin brother Gari'vald and Annore's baby daughter Common soldier Sergeant in Leudast's company Major; Marshal Rathar's adjutant A soldier in Leudast's company Marshal of Unkerlant Colonel commanding regiment in western Forthweg King of Unkerlant Gan*vald and Annore's son Soldier in Leudast's company in western Forthweg An old peasant woman in Zossen Leudast's company commander Firstman of Zossen General in the attack over the Wadi Ugeiga One of Leudast's squadmates Foreign ministry official Krasta's maidservant Count in southern Vahniera Public affairs officer in the war ministry King of Valmiera. Elderly farmer near Pavilosta; Merkela's husband Valmieran duke Marchioness in Priekule; Skarnu's sister Duke of Klaipeda; commander of the Vahnieran army Gedominu's young wife Senior sergeant in Skarmi's company Captain fighting in southern Valmiera Marquis; captain; Krasta's brother Viscount in Priekule Yanina Cossos One of Tsavellas's stewards Gyzis Varvakis's clerk Tsavellas King of Yanina Varvakis Purveyor of delicacies Zuwayza H aJj aj- * Foreign minister of Zuwayza Hassila Haijaj I s middle wife Jamila HajaJ's daughter Kolthoum HajaJ's senior wife Lalla HaJjaJ's junior wife Mithqal Military mage of the second rank Shaddad HijaJ's secretary Shazli King of Zuwayza Tewfik HaJjaJ's elderly majordomo *denotes a viewpoint character I i i i Ealstan's master of herblore droned on and on about the mystical prop- erties of plants. Ealstan paid him no more attention than he had to, no more attention than any other fifteen-year-old boy would have given of a warm summer afternoon. He was thinking about stripping off his tunic andjumping in the stream that flowed past Gromheort, about girls, about what his mother would fix for supper, about girls, about the health of the distant and ancient Duke of Bari, about girls ... about everything under the sun, in short, except herblore. He was a little too obviously not thinking about herblore. The master's voice came sharp as a whipcrack: "Ealstan!" He started, then sprang to his feet, almost knocking over the stool on which he'd been perched. "Master Osgar!" he said, while the other boys whom Osgar taught snickered at his clumsiness - and in relief because the master had caught him instead of them. Osgar's gray-streaked beard seemed to quiver with indignation. Like most men of Forthweg - Eke Ealstan himself - he was strong and stocky and dark, with an imperiously curved nose and with eyes that, at the moment, flashed fire a wardragon might have envied. His voice dripped sarcasm. "Perhaps you win do me the honor, Ealstan, of rerminding me of the chiefest property of the herb snake's-grass." He whacked a switch into the palm of his hand, a hint of what Ealstan would get if he did not do him that honor. "Snake's-grass, Master Osgar?" Ealstan said. Osgar nodded, anticipa- tion on his face: if Ealstan needed to repeat the question, he hadn't been listening. And so, indeed, he hadn't. But his uncle had used snake's-grass the year before, which meant he knew the answer: "May it please you, Master Osgar, if you set the powder of snake's-grass and three-leaved 1 2 Harry Turtledove grass under a man's pillow, he will not dream of himself afterwards ever again. It did not please the master of herblore. His expression made that plain. But it was the night answer. Reluctantly, Osgar nodded and said, "Resume your seat - without making the countryside fear an earthquake, if that be possible. And henceforth, make some effort to appear as if you care what passes here." "Aye, Master Osgar. Thank you, Master Osgar." Ealstan sat as care- fully as he could. For a little while, till the master of herblore stopped aiming glances sharp as a unicorn's horn his way, he paid attention to Osgar's words. There were apothecaries in his family, and he'd thought more than idly of going into that trade himself one day. But he had so many other things to think about, and ... Thwack! The switch came down, not on his back, but on that of his cousin Sidroc. Sidroc had been thinking of something else, too, and hadn't been lucky enough to get a question he could handle with what he already knew. All the boys in Osgar's class looked diligent then, whether they were or not. After what seemed like forever, a brazen bell released them. As they filed out, Osgar said, "Study well. We meet again tomorrow afternoon." He contrived to make that sound like a threat. To Ealstan, tomorrow afternoon felt a million miles away. So did his morning classes in Forthwegian literature and ciphering. So did the work he would have to do tonight for all of those classes4nd more besides. For now, as he left the gloomy corridors of the academy and stepped out into bright sunshine, the whole world seemed his - or, if not the whole world, at least the whole town of Gromheort. He glanced back over his shoulder at the whitewashed stone keep where Count Brorda made his residence. As far as he was concerned, neither Brorda nor Gromheort got their due from King Penda, nor from anyone else in Eoforwic, the capital. To them, Gromheort was just a medium-sized town not far from the border with Algarve. They did not grasp its magnificent uniqueness. That this was also Count Brorda's view of the situation, and one he assiduously cultivated in the folk of Gromheort, had never crossed Ealstan's mind. It didn't cross his nuind now, either. Sidroc made as if to hit him, INTo THE DARKNESS 3 saying, "Curse you, how did you come up with that about snake's-grass? When I strip off for the baths, everyone's going to tease me about the welt on my back. "Uncle Wulffier used the stuff, remember, when he thought he had a sending of nightmares," Ealstan replied. Sidroc snorted. He didn't want an answer; he wanted sympathy. Ealstan was his cousin, not his mother, and had scant sympathy to give. Bantering with their friends, they made their way through the streets of Gromheort toward their homes. Ealstan blinked against the impact of the strong northern sun against whitewash and red tile roofs. Until his eyes got used to the light, he sighed with relief whenever he ducked under an olive tree or one full of ripening almonds. Goodbyes came every couple of blocks as one boy after another peeled off from the group Ealstan and Sidroc were halfway home when one of Count Brorda': constables held up a ceremonial sword to halt foot traffic and wagons I their street. He shouted curses at a luckless man who didn't stop fast enough to suit him. "What's going on?" Sidroc asked, but Ealstan's ears had already caught the rhythmic clip-clop of cavalry. Both boys shouted cheers as the unicorns trotted by. One of the officers made his mount rear for a moment. The sun shone bright as silver off its iron-shod hom and off its spotless white coat, a white that put whitewash to shame. Most of the troopers, though, had sensibly daubed their mounts with paint. Dun and sand and even muddy green were less likely to draw the notice of the foe and a streak of spurting fire, even if they seemed less magnificent than white. A couple of slim, fair, trousered Kaunians, a man and a woman, cheered the cavalry along with everyone else. In their hatred of Algarve, they and the rest of the folk of the Kingdom of Forthweg agreed. After the constable waved traffic forward, Ealstan watched the wom an's hips work in those revealing pants. He licked his lips. Forthwegian women went out in long, loose tunics that covered them from neck to ankles and kept their shapes decently disguised. No wonder people talked about Kaunians the way they did. And yet the woman strode along as if unaware of the spectacle she was creating, and chattered with her com- panion in their own sonorous language. Sidroc watched her, too. "Disgusting," he said, but, by his avid voice 4 Harry Turtledove and by the way he eyes kept following her, he was perhaps not altogether disgusted. "Just because they dressed that way in the days of the Kaunian Empire, they think they have the right to keep on doing it," Ealstan agreed. "The Empire fell more than a thousand years ago, in case they hadn't noticed." "Because the Kaunians de-gen-er-ated from wearing clothes like that." Sidroc pronounced with exaggerated care the long word he'd learned from the history master earlier in the year. He and Ealstan had gone a couple of more blocks when someone came running up the street behind them shouting, "He's dead! He's dead!" "Who's dead?" Ealstan called, but he was afraid he knew. "Duke Alardo, that's who," the man answered. "Are you sure?" Ealstan and Sidroc and several other people asked the question at the same time. Alardo of Bari had been at death's door more than once in the nearly thirty years since his domain was forcibly detached from Algarve in the aftermath of the Six Years' War. He'd been. vigorous enough to pull through every time. ff only, Ealstan thought, he'd been vigorous enough to sire a son ... But the man with the news was nodding vigorously. "I have it straight from my brother-in-law, who has it from Count Brorda's secretary, who heard the message with his own ears when it reached the keep by crystal." Like everyone else in Gromheort, Ealstan fancied himself a connois- seur of rumors. This one sounded highly probable. "King Mezentio will claim Bari," he said grimly. "If he does, we'll fight him." Sidroc sounded grim, too, grim and excited at the same time. "He can't fight Forthweg and VaIrmiera and jelgava all at once. Not even an Algarvian would be crazy enough to try that. " "Nobody knows what an Algarvian is crazy enough to try," Ealstan said with conviction. "He may have more enemies than that, too - Sibiu doesn't like Algarve, either, and the islanders are supposed to be tough. Come on - let's hurry home. Maybe we can be first with the news." They both began to run. As they ran, Sidroc said, "I bet your brother will be glad to get the chance to slaughter some stinking Algarvians." 'Not my fault Leofsig was born first," Ealstan panted. "If I were nirk- I INTo THE DAR-KNESS 5 teen, I'd have gone into the King's levy, too." He pretended to spray fire around, so recklessly that, had it been real, he would have burned down half of Gromheort. He dashed into his own house shouting that Duke Alardo was dead. "What?" His sister Conberge, who was a year older than he, came in from the courtyard, where she'd been trying to keep the flower garden flourishing despite Forthweg's savage summer heat. "What win Mezentio do now?" ,'He will seize the Duchy." That wasn't Ealstan; it was his mother, Elfryth: She'd hurried out of the kitchen, and was wiping her hands on a linen towel. "He will seize it, and we will go to war." She did not sound excited, but about to burst into tears. After a moment, she gathered her- self and went on, "I was about your age, Conberge, when the Six Years' War ended. I remember the uncles and cousins you never got to know because they didn't come home from the war." Her voice broke. She did begin to cry. Ealstan said, "Leofsig will fight for Forthweg. He won't be dragooned into Algarve's army, or Unkerlant's, either, the way so many Forthwegians were in the last war." His mother looked at him as if he'd suddenly started speaking the lan- guage of the Lagoans, whose island kingdom lay beyond the isles of Sibiu, far southeast of Forthweg. "I don't care under which banner he fights," she said. "I don't want him to fight at all." "Losing the last war didn't teach the Algarvians their lesson," Ealstan said. "This time, we'll hit them first." He smacked a fist into the palm of the other hand. "They won't stand a chance." That should have con- vinced his mother; none of his masters could have faulted his logic. For some reason, though, Elfryth looked less happy than ever. So did Hestan, his father, when he came home from casting accounts for one or another of Gromheort's leading merchants. He had already heard the news. By then, very likely, all of Gromheort, all of Forthweg but for a few peasants and herders, had heard the news. He didn't say much. He seldom said much. But his silence seemed ... heavier than usual as he drank his customary evening glass of wine with Elfryth. He had a second glass of wine with supper, something he rarely did. And, all through supper, he kept looking, not east toward Algarve but to the west. He had nearly finished his garlicky stew of mutton and eggplant I I 6 Harry Turtledove when, as if unable to contain himself any longer, he burst out, "What will Unkerlant do?" Ealstan stared at him, then started to laugh. "Your pardon, sir," he said at once; he was, on the whole, a well-mannered boy. "The Unkerlanters are still digging out from their Twinkings War, and trying to fight Gyongyos in the far west, and snapping and snarling at Zuwayza, too. Don't you think they have enough on their plate?" "If they hadn't fought themselves in the Twinkings War, they would still rule most of Forthweg," Hestan pointed out. Ealstan knew that, but it felt like history as old as that of the Kaunian Empire to him. His father resumed: "Anyhow, what I think doesn't matter. What matters is what King Swemmel of Unkerlant thinks - and, by all I've heard, he doesn't know his own mind from day to day." Tealdo studied himself in the little hand mirror. He muttered some- thing vile under his breath: one of the spikes of his mustache was not all it might have been. He applied a little more orange-scented wax, twisted the mustachio between thumb and forefinger, and studied the result. Better, he decided, but kept fiddling with the mustache and with his imperial even so. Better wasn't good enough, not here, not now. Even perfection would be barely good enough. Panfilo came swaggering up the aisle of the caravan coach. His own mustaches, even more fiery of hue than Tealdo's, swept up and out like the horns of a bull. Instead of a chin beard, he favored bushy side whiskers. He paused to nod at Tealdo's primping. "That's good," he said. "Aye, that's very good. All the girls in the Duchy will want to kiss you." "Sounds fine to me, Sergeant," Tealdo said with a grin. He patted the sleeve of his drab tan uniform tunic. "I just wish we could wear some- thing with a little style to it, the way our fathers and grandfathers did." "So do I, and I'll not deny it," Panfilo said. "But our fathers went into the Six Years' War in gold tunics and scarlet kilts. They looked like they were already blazing, and they burned - how they burned! " The sergeant went on up the aisle, snarling at soldiers less fastidious than Tealdo. The caravan hummed south along the ley line. A few rminutes later, Lieutenant Elio came through the coach and snapped at a couple of men Panfilo had rm'ssed. A few rm'nutes after that, Captain Larbino came through and growled at men Elio had missed - and at a couple he hadn't. INTo THE DARKNESS 7 Nobody growled at Tealdo. He leaned back in his seat and whistled an off-color song and watched the Algarvian landscape fiow by outside the coach. Red bn*ck and timber had long since replaced whitewashed plas- ter; the southern part of the realm was cool and cloudy and not well suited to the aiiier forms of architecture in fashion farther north. Here, a man wanted to be sure he stayed warm of nights - and of days, too, a good part of the year. Halfway through the afternoon, the almost sublirminal hum of the caravan deepened as it drew less energy from the line over which it traveled. It slowed to a stop. Captain Larbino threw open the door to the coach. "Forin up in order of march outside," he said. "Remember, King Mezentio has done us great honor by allowing this regiment to take part in the return of the Duchy of Ban' to its rightful allegiance. Remember also, any man failing to live up to this honor will personally answer to me." He set a hand on the basket hilt of his officer's rapier; Tealdo did not doubt he meant that. The captain added, "And finally, remember that we are not marching into a foreign country. We are welcoming our brothers and sisters home." "Hang our brothers," said the soldier next to Tealdo, a burly fellow named Trasone. "I want one of our sisters in Ban' to welcome me home, and then screw me till I can't even walk." "I've heard ideas I liked less," Tealdc, said as he got to his feet. "Lots of them, as a matter of fact." He filed toward the door, then jumped down from the coach, which fioated a couple of feet above the ground, and took his place in the ranks. Captain Larbino's company was not the first in the regiment, but was the second, which let Tealdo see ahead well enough. In front of the first company stood the color guard. He envied them their gaudy ceremonial uniforms, from gilded helms to gleaming boots. The man in the rmiddle of the color guard, who had surely been chosen for his great height, bore the banner of Algarve, diagonal slashes of red, green, and white. The soldier to his left carried the regiment pennon, a blue lightning bolt on gold. just ahead of the color guard stood a squat brick building also flying the Algarvian national banner: the customs house on the border - what had been the border - between Algarve and Bari. Its turnstile was raised, inviting the Algarvian soldiers forward. An almost identical brick build- ing stood a few feet farther south, on the other side of the border. Bari's 8 Harry Turtledove banner, a white bear on orange, floated on a staff beside it. Its wooden turnstile still made as if to bar the road into the Duchy.~ Out of that second building came a plump man in uniform. His tumic and kilt were of different color and cut from those of the Algarvians: not tan, but a brown with green mixed in. Duke Alardo, powers below curse his ghost, had liked running his own realm; he'd been the perfect cat's- paw for the victors of the Six Years' War. But he was dead now, dead without an heir. As for what his people thought ... The plump man in the mud-and-moss uniforin bowed to the Algarvian banner as the color-bearer brought it up to the border. Then he turned and bowed to the Ban*an banner before running it down from the pole where it had floated for a generation and more. And then he let it fall to the ground and spurned it with his boots. He raised the turnstile, crying, "Welcome home, brothers!" Tealdo shouted himself hoarse but could hardly hear himself, for every man in the regiment was shouting himself hoarse. Colonel Ombruno, who commanded the unit, ran forward, embraced the Barian - the former Ban'an - customs officer, and kissed him on both cheeks. Turning back to his own men, he said, "Now, sons of my fighting spirit, enter the land that is ours once more." The captains began singing the Algarvian national hymn. The men joined them in a swelling chorus ofjoy and pride. They marched past the two customs houses now suddenly made useless. Tealdo poked Trasone in the ribs and murmured, "Now that we're ~ entering the land, let's see if we can enter the women too, eh, like you said." Trasone grinned and nodded. Sergeant Parifilo looked daggers at both of them, but the singing was so loud, he couldn't prove they hadn't taken part. Tealdo did start singing again: lustily, in every sense of the word. Parenzo, the Banian town nearest this stretch of the border with Algarve - no, nearest this stretch of the border with the rest of Algarve - lay a couple of miles south of the customs houses. Long before the regi- ment reached the town, people began streaming out of it toward them. Perhaps the fat Banian customs officer had used his crystal to let the baron in charge of the town know the reunion was now official. Or perhaps such news spread by magic less formal but no less effective than that by which crystals operated. Whatever the reason, the road was lined with cheering, screaming men INTo THE DARKNESS I 9 and women and children before the regiment got halfway to Parenzo. Some of the locals waved homemade Algarvian banners: homemade because Alardo had forbidden display or even possession of the Algarvian national colors in his realm while he lived. In the handful of days since the Duke's death, quite a few Banians; had dyed white tumics and kilts with stripes of green and red. The crowds didn't just line the road, either. In spite of Colonel Ombruno's indignant shouts, men dashed out to clasp the hands of the Algarvian soldiers and to kiss them on the cheeks, as he had done with the customs officers. Women ran out, too. They pressed flowers into the hands of the marching Algarvians, and national banners, too. And the kisses they gave were no mere pecks on the cheeks. Tealdo did not want to let go of a sandy-haired beauty whose tunic and kilt, though of perfectly respectable cut, were woven of stuff so filmy, she might as well have been wearing nothing at all. "March!" Panfilo screamed at him. "You are a soldier of the Kingdom of Algarve. What will people think of you?" "They will think I am a man, Sergeant, as well as a soldier," he replied with dignity. He gave the girl a last pat, then took a few steps double- time to resume his place in the ranks. He twirled his mustache as he went, in case the kisses had melted the wax out of it. Because of such distractions, the two-mile march to Parenzo ended up taking twice as long as it should have. Colonel Ombruno went from apoplectic at the delay to placid when a statuesque woman in an outfit even more transparent than that of the girl who'd kissed Tealdo attached herself to him and showed no intention of letting go till she found a bed. Trasone snickered. "The good colonel's wife will be furious if word of this ever gets back to her," he said. "So will both his mistresses," Tealdo said. "The bold colonel is a man of parts - and I know the part he intends using tonight." "The same one you do, once we billet ourselves in Parenzo," Trasone said. "If I can find that same lady again - why not?" Tealdo asked. "Or even a different one." A shadow flicked across his face, and then another. He craned his neck. A fiight of dragons, their scaly hides painted red, green, and white, flew down from Algarve into Bari: one of many entering the Duchy, no 10 Harry Turtledove doubt. High as they flew, the rhythnuic whoosh of their wingbeats was, easy to hear on the ground. Tealdo made as if to clap his hands when the dragons flew past Parenzo. "Dragonfliers always get more than their share of women," he said. "For one thing, most of them are nobles. For another, they've got the lure of the beasts." "Not fair," Trasone agreed. "Not even close to fair," Tealdo said. "But if they don't land anywhere close to us, it doesn't matter." In the town square of Parenzo, the local baron stood on a wooden ros- trum. He had the intent look of a man who was either going to make a speech or run for the latrine. Tealdo knew which he would have pre- ferred, but no one consulted him. The speech, inevitably, was long and boring. It was also in the fast, clucking Barian dialect, so that Tealdo, who came from the foothills of northeastern Algarve, not far from the jelgavan border, rmissed about one word every sentence. Duke Alardo had tried to make the Barian dialect into a language of its own, further sundering his people from the rest of Algarve. He'd evidently had some luck. But when the count led the regi- ment in singing the national hymn, he and King Mezentio's soldiers understood one another perfectly. Colonel Ombruno ascended to the rostrum. "Noble Baron, I thank you for your gracious remarks." He looked out over the neat ranks of soldiers. "Men, I grant you perrmission to fraternize with your fellow countrymen of Parenzo, provided only that you return to this square for billeting before the chimes of midnight. For now - dismissed!" He came down and slipped an arm around the waist of the woman in the filmy tunic and kilt. With whoops and cheers, the regiment dispersed Tealdo did his share of backslapping and wrist clasping with his fellow countrymen, but that wasn't the only thing on his mind. Having been blessed with a good sense of direction, he went farther from the central square than did most of his comrades, thereby reducing his competition. When he walked into a cafe, he found himself the only soldier - indeed, the only customer - in the place. The serving girl was pretty, or even a little more than pretty. Her smile was friendly, or even a little more than friendly, as she came up to him. "What can I get you, hero?" she asked. INTo THE DAR-KNESS 11 Tealdo glanced at the bill of fare on the wall. "We're not far from the sea," he answered, smiling back, "so how about the stewed eels with onions? And a yellow wine to go with them - and a glass for yourself, sweetheart, if you'd like one." "I'd like one fine," she said. "And after supper, would you like to get your own eel stewed? I have a room upstairs." Her sigh was low and throaty. "It's so good to be in Algarve again, where we belong." "I think it'll be good, corming into Bari," Tealdo said, and pulled the serving girl down on to his lap. Her arms twined around him. Suddenly, he didn't care whether he got supper or not. Krasta peered into her closet, wondering what she had that was suit- able to wear to a declaration of war. That problem had never before vexed the young marchioness, although her mother had surely had to make the same difficult choice at the outset of the Six Years' War, when Valmiera and her allies last sought to invade and subdue Algarve. Her mouth thinned to a narrow line. She could not make up her mind. She picked up a bell and rang it. Let a servant figure out the permuta- tions. That was what servants were for. Bauska hurried in. She was wearina a sensible gray tunic and trousers: sensible and boring. "What shall I put on to go to the palace, Bauska?" Krasta asked. "Should I be cautious with a tunic, or show our grand Kauman heritage by wearing trousers and blouse?" She sighed. "I really fancy a short tunic and kilt, but I don't suppose I can wear an Algarvian style when we're declaring war on that windbag, Mezentio." "Not unless you care to be stoned through the streets of Priekule, Bauska replied. "No, that wouldn't be good," Krasta said peevishly. She plucked a cinnamon-flavored sweet fi7orn a gold-chased bowl on the dresser and popped it into her mouth. "Now - what should I do?" Not being a hereditary noble, Bauska had to make her wits work. She plucked at a loose wisp of pale hair - but not so pale as Krasta's - while she thought. At last, she said, "Tunic and trousers would show solidarity with jelgava, and to some degree with Forthweg, though folk of Kaunian blood don't rule there " Krasta sniffed. "Kaunians in Forthweg bore me to tears, with their endless chatter about being oldest of the old." 12 Harry Turtledove "Those claims hold some truth, milady," Bauska said. "I don't care," Krasta said. "I don't care at all. They're still dull." "As you say, milady." Bauska held a finger in the air. "But tunic and trousers might offend the envoys from the islands of Sibiu and from Lagoas, for their ancestors have close ties to the ancestors of the Algarvians." "They all spring from the same pack of barbarian dogs, you mean, even if some of them rmight be on our side now." Krasta barely refrained from boxing Bauska's ears. "You still haven't told me what I ought to wear! " "You cannot know till you reach the palace whether or not you have made the perfect choice," her servant answered, mild as ever. "It's not fair!" Krasta cried. "My brother doesn't have to worry about things like this. Why should 1?" "Lord Skarnu has no choice in his apparel because he wears King Gainibu's uniform," Bauska said. "I am sure he will make Valmiera proud of his brave service." "I am sure I don't know what to put on, and you're no help at all," Krasta said, Bauska bowed her head. "Get out!" Krasta shouted, and the servant fled. That left Krasta alone with her choice. "I can't get good help," she fumed, taking gray wool trousers and a blue silk top from their hooks and putting them on. She studied the effect in the mirror. It didn't satisfy her, but then very little satisfied her. A few pounds lighter, a couple of inches taller ... and she probably would have remained dissatisfied, though she didn't think so. Grudgingly, she adrulitted to herself that the blue of her tunic set off the almost matching blue of her eyes. She belted the trousers with a rope of white gold and put a thinner rope around her neck. They played up the paleness of her hair. She sighed. This would have to do. She went downstairs and called loudly for the carriage. Her estate had sat by the edge of Priekule for centuries, long before all the ley lines around the power point at the heart of the city were charted and exploited, and so stood near none of them. Even if it had, she would not have cared to nide a public caravan to the palace and subject herself to the stares of barmaids and booksellers and other vulgar, common folk. She got more stares niding in the carriage, but she didn't have to notice JIL INTo THE DARKNESS 13 those; they weren't so intimate as they would have been in the cramped confines of a caravan coach. The horses clopped along the cobblestones past square modem buildings of brick and glass (at which she sneered because they were modem); past others whose marble colonnades and painted statues inuitated fornis &orn the days of the Kaunian Empire (at which she sneered because they were limitations); past some a couple of hundred years old, when the omate Algarvian architectural influence was strong (at which she sneered because they looked Algarvian); and past a few true Kaunian relics (at which she sneered because they were decrepit). The carriage had just passed the famous Kaunian Column of Victory - now at last fully restored after fire damage during the Six Years' War - when a green-uniformed fellow held up a hand to bar the way. "What is the meaning of this?" Krasta demanded of her driver. "Never rmind that oaf - go on through." "Milady, I had better not," he answered cautiously. She started to rage at him, but then the first Valmieran footsoldiers started tramping through the street from which she'd been barred. The river of men in dark green trousers and tunics seemed to take forever to flow past. "If I am late to the palace because of these soldiers, ~ shall be very unhappy - and so shall you," she told the driver, tapping her foot on the carpeted floor. She smiled to see him shiver; all her servants knew she meant what she said when she said things like that. Great troops of horse cavalry and unicom cavalry followed the infantrymen. Krasta curled her lip to see umicorns made as ugly as horses. And then she curled her lip again, for a squadron of behemoths followed the unicorns. They were ugly already, and thus did not need to be made so. Except for their homs - as long as those of the unicorns, but far thicker, and wickedly curved - they resembled nothing so much as great, hairy, thick-legged pigs. Their sole virtue was strength: each effortlessly carried not only several niders but also a heavy stick and a thick blanket of mail. At last, men and beasts cleared the road. Without Krasta's having to say a word, the driver whipped the horses up into a gallop as soon as he could. The carriage shot through the narrow, winding streets of Pniekule, almost mowing down a couple of women unwise enough to try to cross in front of it. They shrieked at Krasta. She angrily shouted back: had the carnage hit them, she might have been late to the palace. 14 Harry Turtledove As things were, she did arrive in good time. A bowing servant took charge of the carriage. Another helped her alight and said, "If milady the marchioness will be good enough to accompany me to the Grand Hall . . ." "Thank you," Krasta said, words she seldom wasted on her own servi- tors. Here in the palace, though, she was not the ruler, nor even of more than slightly above middling rank. The gold and fiirs and splendid por- traits of kings past reminded her of that. So did the princesses and duchesses who looked down their noses at her as she was accustomed to looking down on the rest of the world. As soon as she saw a woman who outranked her wearing trousers, she relaxed: even if that proved a mistake, the duchess would get the blame, not she. But, in fact, more women in tunics looked nervous about their outfits than did women in trousers. Safe from censure, she let out a small, invisible sigh of relief Almost all the noblemen coming into the Grand Hall were in trousers and short tunics. Many of them were in uniform, with glittering badges showing both military and social rank. Krasta looked daggers at a man in a tunic and pleated kilt till she heard him speaking Valmieran with a rhythmic, trilling accent and realized he was the minister from Sibiu in his native costume. A horn's clear note pierced the chatter. "Forth comes Gainibu III," a herald cried, "King of Valmiera and Emperor of the provinces and colonies across the seas. Give him great honor, as he deserves!" Krasta rose from her seat and bowed very low, as did all the nobles and diplomats in the Great Hall. She remained standing till Gainibu had taken his place behind the podium at the front of the hall. Like so many of his nobles, he wore a uniform, the chest of which was almost hidden by a great profusion of medallions and ribbons. Some of those showed honorary affiliations. Some were true rewards for courage; while still Crown Prince, he had served with distinction against Algarve during the Six Years' War. "Nobles and people of Valrmiera," he said, while artists sketched his picture and scribes scribbled down his words for news sheets to reach the people whose villages were too poor and too far from a power point to boast even one crystal, "the Kingdom of Algarve, in willful violation of the ternis of the Treaty of Tortush, has sent armed invaders into the INTo THE DARKNEss 15 sovereign Duchy of Bari. The Algarvian minister to Valmiera has stated that King Mezentio has no intention of withdrawing his men from the said Duchy, and has positively rejected my demand that Algarve do so. When this latest outrage is added to the many others Algarve has com- mitted in recent years, it leaves me no choice but to declare that, from this moment forth, the Kingdom of Valmiera considers itself to be at war with the Kingdom of Algarve." Along with the other nobles King Gainibu had summoned to the palace, Krasta applauded. "Victory! Victory! Victory!" The shout filled the Grand Hall, with occasional cries of "On to Trapam'!" thrown in for good measure. Gainibu held up his hand. Slowly, silence returned. Into it, he said, "Nor does Vahniera go to war alone. Our allies of old are our allies yet." As if to prove as much, the minister from jelgava came and stood beside the king. "We too are at war with Algarve," he said. Krasta understood his words with no trouble, though to her ear they had an odd accent: jelgavan and Valmieran were so closely related, some reckoned them dialects rather than two separate languages. The tumic the swarthy nimlister from Forthweg wore could not dis- guise his blocky build. Instead of Valn-iieran, he spoke in classical Kaunian: "Forthweg, free not least because of the courage of Valmiera and jelgava, stands by her friends in bad times as well as good. We too war with Algarve." Formality fell from him like a mask. He abandoned the ancient tongue for the modem to roar, "On to Trapani!" The cheers were deafening. "Bani in Algarvian hands is a dagger aimed at Sibiu's heart," the minister from the island nation said. "We shall also fight the common foe." But the minister from Lagoas, which had been Valmiera's ally in the Six Years' War, stayed silent now. So did the slant-eyed envoy from Kuusamo, which ruled the eastern, and much larger, part of the island it shared with Lagoas. Lagoas was nervous about Kuusamo; Kuusamo was fighting a desultory naval war far to the east against Gyongyos, - though not, strangely, in any real alliance with Unkerlant. The Unkerlanter minister also sat on his hands, as did the envoys from the nuinor powers between Unkerlant and Algarve. Krasta hardly noticed the ornissions. With her allies, Valmiera would 16 Harry Turtledove surely punish the wicked Algarvians. They had brought the war on them- selves - now let them see how they liked it. "On to Trapani!" she yelled. Count Sabrino elbowed his way through the crowd in Trapani's Royal Square, toward the balcony from which King Mezentio would address the people and nobles of Algarve. He wanted to hear Mezentio's words with his own ears, not read them later on or, if he was lucky, catch them from a crystal some nearby sorcerer was holding. People gave way before him, men with nods that would have to make do in the crush for bows, women, some of them, with inviting similes. Those had nothing to do with his noble rank. They had everything to do with his tan uniform, with the three silver pips of a colonel on each shoulder strap, and, most of all, with the prorminent Dragon Corps badge just above his heart. Close by, a man with his mustache going from red to white spoke to a younger woman, perhaps a daughter, perhaps a mistress or new wife: I was here, darling, night here, when King Dudone declared war on Unkerlant all those years ago." "So was I," Sabriino said. He'd been a youth then, too young to fight until the Six Years' War had nearly run its course. "People were afraid then. Look now." He waved, ending with a typically flamboyant Algarvian twist of the wrist. "This nuight be a festival!" "We're taking back our own this time, and everybody knows it," the older man said, and his female companion nodded vigorous agreement. Noticing the silver dragon coiled on Sabrino's chest, the man added, "And the greatest good luck to you in the air, sir. Powers above keep you safe. " "For which you have my thanks, poor though they be." Crush or no crush, Sabrino bowed to both the man and his lady before pressing on. He brought a chunk of melon wrapped in a parchment-thin slice of ham from a vendor with an eye for the main chance, and advanced with only one elbow to clear his path while he ate. He hadn't come quite so far as he wanted when King Mezentio appeared on the balcony: a tan, lean man, his golden crown glearming even more brightly in the noonday sun than his bald scalp would have. "My friends, my countrymen, we are invaded!" he cnied, and Sabrino, to his relief, found he had no trouble hearing. "All the Kaunian countries INTo THE DARKNESS 17 want to gnaw our bones. The Jelgavans are attacking us in the mountains, the Valrm*erans have swarmed out of the marquisate on this side of the Soretto they stole from us in the Treaty of Tortusso, and Forthweg's fierce cavalry sweeps over the plains in the northwest. Even Sibiu, our own blood kin, plunges the dagger into our back, assaulting our ships and burning our harbors. They think - they all think - we shall be meat for their butchering. My friends, my countrymen, what say you about that?" "No!" Sabrino shouted it at the top of his lungs, along with everyone else. The roar was terrific, overpowering. I "No," Mezentio agreed. "We have done nothing but take back that which is rightfully ours. Even doing that, we were calm, we were reasonable. Did we war with the traitor Duke of Ban', Alardo the lick- spittle? We had every reason to war with him, but we let him live out his long and worthless span of days. Only after the flames claimed his carcass did we reclaim the Duchy - and the people of Bani welcomed us with flowers and kisses and songs of joy. And for those songs of joy, we are plunged into a war we do not want. "My friends, my countrymen, did we claim the Marquisate of Rivaroli, which Valmiera cut from the body of our kingdom after the Six Years' War for their foothold on this side of the Soretto? We did not. We do not, though King Gainibu's men mistreat the good Algarvians who live there. I thought no one could doubt the justice of our claim to Bari. It seems I was wrong. "It seems I was wrong," Mezentio repeated, bringing his right fist down on the waist-high marble balustrade. "The Kaunians and their jackals sought any excuse for war, and now they think they have one. My countrymen, my friends, mark my words: if we lose this struggle, they win ruin us. Jelgava and Forthweg will j oin hands in the north across the corpse of our kingdom, cutting us off forevermore from the Garelian Ocean. In the south, the Treaty of Tortusso gave barely a taste of what Valmiera and Sibiu, aye, and Lagoas, too, would do to us if only they could." Sabrino frowned a little. Since the Lagoans had not declared war on Algarve, he would not have mentioned them. He did not for a moment think King Mezentio wrong about what Lagoas wanted, merely a trifle impolitic. Mezentio went on, "As I speak here, our enemies bum our fields and 18 Harry Turtledove farms and villages. Their dragons carry eggs of devastation and destruc- tion and death to our towns and cities. My friends, my countrymen, shall we do what is in our poor power to throw them back?" "Aye!" Again, Sabriino yelled as loud as he could. Again, he could hardly hear himself for the outcry around him. "Valmlera has declared war on us. Jelgava has followed like a dog on a leash. Forthweg has declared war. So has Sibiu." This time, Mezentio raised his fist in the air. "They seek to chop us off at the knees. My friends, my countrymen, people of Algarve, here is my vow to You: it shall not be!" Sabrino yelled yet again. He too pumped his fist in the air. A woman beside him stood up on tiptoe to kiss him on the cheek. He gathered her into his arms and made a proper job of the kiss. King Mezentio held both hands high, palms out toward the crowd. After a little while, quiet returned. Into it, he spoke with simple deter- mination: "We shall defend Algarve." "Algarve! Algarve! Algarve!" The chant echoed through the square, through all of Trapani, and, Sabrino hoped, throughout the kingdom. Mezentio bowed stiffly from the waist, acknowledging in his own person the cheers for his kingdom. Then, with a final wave, he withdrew from the balcony. Sabrino saw one of his iministers come forward to clasp his wrist in congratulation. "You'll help save us, Colonel," said the woman who'd kissed him. "Milady, I shall do what I can," Sabrino answered. "And now, much as I would sooner linger with you" - she dropped him a curtsy for that - I must go and do it." The dragon farm lay well outside Trapani, so far outside that Sabrino had to take a horse-drawn carriage for the last leg of the journey, as no ley caravan reached such a distance from the power point at the heart of the capital. "Good of you to j oin us," said General Borso, the firin com- mandant, giving Sabriino ajaundiced stare. "My lord, I am not tardy, not by my orders, and I had the honor of hearing with my own ears King Mezentio casting defiance in the face of all those who wrong Algarve," Sabrino said, respectfully defiant of higher authority. Higher authority yielded, Borso saying, "Ali, my friend, in that case I envy you. Being confined here on duty, I heard him through the crystal. INTo THE ARKNESS 19 He spoke very well, I thought. The Kaunians and their friends would be wrong to take us lightly." "That they would," Sabrino agreed. "The crystal is all very well when required, but everything in it is tiny and tinny. In person, the king was agnificent." "Good, good." Borso bunched his fingertips and kissed them "Splendid. If he was magnificent, we too must be magnificent, to live up to his example. In aid of which, my dear fellow, is your wing fully pre- i)ared for action?" "My lord, you need have no doubts on that score," Sabrino said. "The fliers are in fine fettle, every one of them eager for duty. And we are well supplied with meat and brimstone and quicksilver for the dragons. My report of three days past goes into full detail on all these matters." "Reports are all very well," Borso said, "but the impressions of th men who write them are better. And I have orders for you, since all is in such excellent readiness. You and your entire wing are ordered northwest to Gozzo, from which point you are to resist the invading Forthwegians; "Gozzo? If I remember the place nightly, it is a Miserable excuse for town," Sabrino said with a sigh. "Will they be able to keep us supplied "If they cannot, the count's head will roll and so win the duke's and so will the nuartermaster's " Borso answered "We are as readv for this 11 ur foes surround us," Sabrino said. "They tried to destroy us in the Six Years' War and came too close to succeeding. We need to be readv He saluted the farm commandant, then went out to his win Th dragons were tethered in long rows behind Borso's office. When they saw him, they hissed and raised their scaly crests - not in greeting, he I-PnT ]~"t- in o Aro onish mix of on er and alarm and hun er Some people romanticized unicorns, which were beautiful and quite bright as amimals went. Some people romanticized horses, which were pretty stupid. And, sure as sure, some t)eoDle romanticized dragons, which were not only stupid but vicious to boot Sabrino chuckled Nobody as far as he knew, romanticized behemoths - and a good thing, too. He shouted for an orderlv. When the voung subaltern came running 20 Harty Turtledove up, Sabriino said, "Summon the men of my wing. We are ordered to Gozzo, to defend against the cursed Forthwegians, as soon as may be." The subaltern bowed and hurried away. A moment later, a trumpeter blared out half a dozen harsh, imperative notes: the opening notes to the Algarvian national hymn. As he played them over and over again, men spilled from tan tents and ran, kilts flap- ping, to form an eight-by-eight square in front of Sabrino, four captains standing out ahead of it. The dragons hissed and moaned and spread their enormous wings. Stupid though they were, they'd learned an assembly meant they were likely to fly soon. "It's war," Sabrino told the fliers in his wing. "We are ordered to Gozzo, to fight the Forthwegians. Is every man, is every beast, ready to depart within the hour?" A chorus of Aye! rang out, but one flier, nuisery on his face, raised a hand. Sabriino pointed to him. "Speak, Corbeo!" "my lord," Corbeo said, "I regret to report that my dragon's tom wing membrane has not yet healed enough to let her fly." He hung his head in shame. "Had the war but waited another week-' "It was not your fault, and it can't be helped," Sabriino said, adding, "Cheer up, man! A week's not such a long time. You'll see our share of action, never fear. They may even throw you aboard a fresh mount before then, if they decide they need trained fliers in a hurry." Corbeo bowed. "May it be so, lord!" Sabrino shook his head. "No, for that would show our beloved king- dom was in great danger. I hope you relax and drink wine and pinch the pretty girls till your dragon heals." Corbeo bowed again, grinning now. Pleased with himself, Sabrino addressed the whole wing: "Men, prepare to fly. My captains, to me." One of the captains, Domiziano, asked the question Sabrino was about to address: "My lord, will we have force enough to turn back the invaders'," "We iriust," Sabriino said simply. "Algarve depends on us. We yield as little ground as we can. Whatever we do" - he remembered Mezentiols words from the balcony - "we don't let Forthweg andjelgavajoin hands. To block that, our lives mean nothing. Do you understand?" Domiziano and the other three squadron commanders nodded. Sabriino slapped each of them on the back. "Good. Splendid. And now we needs must ready ourselves as well." INTo THE DARKNESS 21 When he was mounted at the join of his dragon's neck and shoulders, when he spurred the soft skin there and the beast sprang into the air, when the ground fell away beneath him and the dragon's wings thun- dered, he could understand for a moment why some people sighed over the great beasts. When the dragon twisted and tried to bite till he whacked it in the snout with a long-handled goad, he cursed those people, who knew nothing about real dragons, as a pack of fools. The Elsung Mountains formed the land border between Unkerlant and Gyongyos. Precisely where they formed the border was a matter on which King Swerrimel of Unkerlant and Ekrekek Arpad of Gyongyos had trouble agreeing. Because they had trouble agreeing, some thousands of young men from each of the two kingdoms were settling the question for them. Leudast wished he were back on his farm, not far from the Forthwegian border, rather than sitting around a campfire here in the rock-strewn middle of nowhere. As far as he was concerned, Arpad was welcome to every one of these boulders if he was crazy enough to want them. He didn't mention his opinion. Sergeants took a dim view of such sen- timents. Officers took an even dimmer one. From what people said (whispered, actually), King Swemmel took the dimmest view of all. Having finally won the long civil war with his twin brother, Kyot, Swernmel thought anyone who disagreed with him a traitor. A lot of people had disappeared because Swemmel held that opinion. Leudast did not want to add his name to the list. He leaned for-ward to toast a piece of sausage skewered on a stick over the fire. He twirled the stick between the palms of his hands to get the hard, peppery sausage done on all sides. His sergeant, a veteran named Magnulf, nodded approval, saying, "Very efficient, Leudast." "Thank you, Sergeant." Leudast beamed. That was high praise. He'd never heard the word efficiency before the impressers pulled him off his farm and put him in a rock-gray uniform tunic, but King Swernmel was wild for it, which meant everyone beneath Swemmel was wild for it, too. Along with learning how to slaughter the foes of Unkerlant, Leudast had learned to mouth the phrases: "Time and motion - least and fewest." "Least and fewest," Magnulf agreed around a mouthful of his own IF 22 Harty Turtledove sausage. Leudast had a little trouble understanding him, but waiting to swallow would have been inefficient. Magnulf scratched his formidable nose - though it was less formidable than those of Leudast and half the other troopers in his squad - and went on, "The stinking Gongs are liable to try something tonight. That's what we hear from prisoners, anyhow." Leudast wondered how they'd squeezed out the news. Efficiently, without a doubt. His stomach did a slow flipflop as he thought- about how efficient interrogators could be. One of his squadmates, a fellow named Wisgard who was shm. by Unkerlanter standards, spoke up: "Back home, it would be midnight or so, and here the sun's barely down." "We are a great kingdom." Magnulf thumped his broad chest with a big, thick-fingered fist. "And we are going to be a greater kingdom still, once we drive the Gongs off the mainland and over to the islands they've taken to infesting." "That'd be easier if they hadn't stolen this stretch of land from us during the Twinkings War," a trooper named Berthar said. "Proves how important efficiency is," Magnulf said. "A kingdom gets on fine with one king - that's efficient. Try to put two in the space meant for one, and everything goes to pieces. " That wasn't efficiency, not the way Leudast saw things. It was just common sense. If either Swerninel. or Kyot had admitted he was the younger twin, Unkerlant would have been spared a lot of grief Armies had marched and countermarched across Leudast's farm - it had been his father's then, for he'd been born just as the civil war was finally petering out - stealing what they could and burning a lot of what they couldn't. The countryside had been years recovering. And now, when it finally had recovered, here was another war on the far frontier of the kingdom. For the life of him, Leudast couldn't see the efficiency of that. Again, though, he could see the inefficiency of saying SO. Captain Urgan came up to the fire and said, "Be alert, men. The Gyongyosians are planning something nasty." "I've already warned them, sit," Magnulf said. "Efficient," Urgan said crisply. "I have more news, too: over in the far east, all of Algarve's neighbors have jumped on her back." "His Majesty was as efficient as all get-out to stand aside from that INTo THE DARKNESS 23 war," Magnulf said. "Let all those tall bastards kin each other." "Forthwegians aren't tall bastards," Berthar said with fussy precision. Magnulf gave him a glare undoubtedly practiced in front of a mirror. "They may not be tall bastards, but they're bastards just the same," the sergeant growled. "If they weren't bastards, they wouldn't have thrown off Unkerlanter suzerainty during the Twinkings War, now would they?" His tone strongly suggested that giving any kind of answer would be inefficient. Berthar didn't need to be a first-rank mage to figure that out. He kept his mouth shut. Captain Urgan added, "And Forthweg has its own share ofKaunians. They're tall bastards, every bit as much as the lousy Algarvians." Berthar did his best to look as if he'd never been so rash as to open his mouth. Leudast wouldn't have been so rash himself He did ask, "Sir, any word on what the Gongs have in rmind?" "I'm afraid not," Urgan said. "I don't look for anything overwhelm- ing, though - with so few ley lines charted in this powersforsaken stretch of the world, and with even fewer properly improved, they have as much trouble moving men and supplies as we do. This isn't the most efficient war ever fought, but Gyongyos started it, so we've got to respond." A brief hiss of cloven air was the only warning Leudast had before an egg burst about fifty yards from the campfire. The blast of light and heat from the energies it released knocked him off his feet and made him won- der if he'd been blinded: all he saw for a moment were purple smears in front of his eyes. He did not need to hear the screech of a swooping dragon to know it would attack the men around the fire. Nor did he need to see it to know it would be able to see him if he stayed close by the flames. He rolled away, bumping over rocks and over little spiky-leafed mountain shrubs whose name he did not know: before the impressers took him away, he'd always been a man of the fladands. He saw the flame that burst from the dragon's jaw, saw it and smelled the brimstone reek, too. Somewhere behind him, Wisgard shrieked. A moment later, a pale, thin beam of light shot from the ground toward the dragon. Leudast wished he'd had his own stick slung on his back. Then he could have blazed at the enemy, too, instead of seeking only to hide. But the Gyongyosians, like the folk of most other realms these days, . I Z~_ - 24 Harry Turtledove were sly enough to silver their dragons' bellies and the undersides of their wings. The beam that would have burned a hole in man was harmlessly reflected away. The dragon belched forth fire again. Another scream arose. No one blazed back at the beast as it fiew off to the west. The wind from its great wingbeats blew Leudast's hair all awry. Blinking frantically, he scrambled toward the sticks. As he groped for his own, Magnulf and Berthar came crawling up. "Where's the captain?" Leudast asked. "Back there, toasted like bread you forget over the fire," Magnulf answered. Somewhere west of them, someone kicked a rock. Magnulf cursed. "And here come the Gongs. Let's see how expensive we can make ourselves. Spread out - we don't want them getting around our flank." Leudast scuttled toward a boulder fifteen or twenty feet away. A beam like the one poor Captain Urgan had aimed at the dragon zipped close to him, but did not strike. He dove behind the boulder, almost knocking the wind out of himself Then, peering out into the night, he tried to find the spot from which the enemy had blazed at him. The big disadvantage to using a stick at night was that, if you missed, the flash of light could tell the enemy where you were. If you were smart, you didn't stay there long. If you moved, though, you were liable to expose yourself, or to make some noise. Leudast heard some noise off to his night: running footsteps. He whirled. Straight at him came a Gyongyosian trooper who must have noted the thud and clatter he'd made diving for cover. With a gasp, Leudast thrust his forefinger into the recess at the base of his stick. As much by luck as by good aim, his beam caught the Gong square in the chest. just for a moment, Leudast saw the enemy's broad, staring face, made animal-like - at least to a clean-shaven Unkerlanter - by a bushy yellow beard. The fellow let out a grunt, more of surprise than of pain, and toppled. "The stick," Leudast muttered, and scurried over to grab it. He didn't know how much power his own had left. This far from a ley line, with no first-rank mage close by, when that power was gone, it was gone. Good to have a second stick handy. He scowled at the Gyongyosian's body, from which rose a faint smell ofburnt meat along with the latrine odor of suddenly loosed bowels. The bastard was already dead, sure as sure. A mage didn't have to be of the first rank to draw energy from a sacnifice. Soldiers who gave themselves up to power their comrades sticks won the Star of Efficiency - post- humously, of course - but expending a captive was more efficient still. t 1 n t matter, not here. For one ng, e a p first-ran crawled back b For several minutes, they didn't. Maybe they weren't sure how much damage the dragon attack had done. Or maybe they weren't any more enthusiastic about the war than Leudast was. He listened to somebody, presumably an officer, haranguing them in their unintelligible twittering language. Knowing what an Unkerlanter officer would say in such a spot, Leudast guessed the fellow was telling them they'd get worse from im than from their foes if they didn't start moving. Here they came, the fuzzy bastards, some of them blazing, others dar ing forward while the rest made the Unkerlanters keep their heads down. Leudast popped up, took a couple of blazes with his beam, and then ducked again be re t e ongs cou puncture in as e punc ure When he h 9 9 to him, 11.1 Ir- n 11 11 A s ce. ut t en e was n goo cover again, and blazing back at the ing up from the rear, shouting King Swernmel's name as they advanced. The Gyongyosians shouted, too, in dismay. Their chance was gone, and they knew it. The reinforcements even had a small portable gg with them. How the Gongs howled when they were on the receiving "Forward, men!" an Unkerlanter officer shouted. "Let's drive them out of the mountains and into the flat. King Swernmel and efficiency!" As far as Leudast was concerned, thinking a couple of platoons o soldiers could drive Gyongyos out of the Elsung Mountains wasn t very efficient. He lay panting behind his heap of rocks. e een in t mountains for a while. No overeager fool was go ng to get im e 9 n one p ay g is efficient, too," he muttered, and sat tight. 26 Harry Turtledove Fernao stood at the bow of the Leopardess as she bounded north and west across the waves from Setubal, the capital of Lagoas, toward the Algarvian port of Feltre. The mage felt harassed. Not only did he have to bear in mind the pattern of ley lines on the sea - harder to read than they were on land - but he also had to be alert for any trace of Sibian warships, and perhaps for those of Valmiera, too. Captain Rogelio came up to him. "Anything?" he asked. "No, sir." Fernao shook his head, and felt the ponytail flip back and forth on his neck. Like most Lagoans, he was tall and on the lean side. In some lights, his hair was auburn; in others, a rich brown. His narrow eyes, with a fold of skin at the inner corners that made them look set at a slant, told of Kuusaman blood. "All seems as quiet as if we were still at peace." Rogelio snorted. "Lagoas is at peace, I'll thank you to remember. It's all the other fools who've thrown the world into the fire." He twiddled at his mustache: he wore a big waxed swashbuckler, in Algarvian style. "As if the world were at peace." Fernao accepted the correction; like any mage worth his salt, he craved precision. After a moment, he went on, "In the Six Years' War, we chose sides." "And a whole great whacking lot of good it did us, too," the captain of the Leopardess said with another snort. "What did we get out of it? Thousands - tens, hundreds of thousands - dead, even more maimed, a war debt we're just now starting to get out from under, half our shipping sunk - and you want to do it again? Here's what I think of that." He spat - carefully, over the leeward rail. "I never said I wanted to do it again," Fernao replied. "My older brother died in the woods in front of Priekule. I don't remember much about him; I was only six or seven. I lost an uncle - my mother's younger brother - and a cousin, and another cousin came home short a foot." He shrugged. "I know it's not anything special. Plenty of families in Lagoas have worse stories to tell. Too many families simply aren't, after the Six Years' War." " Thats the truth," Rogelio said with an emphatic nod. Everything he did was emphatic; he aped Algarvian style in more than his mustache. "So why do you sound so cursed glum about staying at peace, then?" "I'm not glum about our staying at peace," Fernao said. "I'm glum about the rest of the world going back to war. All the kingdoms of eastern INTo THE DARKNESS Derlavai suffered as much as we did." "And Unkerlant," Rogelio put in. "Don't forget Unkerlant.' 27 "Unkerlant is a kingdom of eastern Derlaval ... in a manner of speak- ing," Fernao said with a thin smile. The snuile soon slipped. "Thanks to the Twinkings War, they hurt themselves worse than Algarve ever man- aged, and Algarve hurt them plenty." Rogelio's lip curled scornfully. "They were efficient at hurting them- selves. " Fernao's chuckle had a bitter edge. "King Swernmel will make the Unkerlanters efficient about the time King Gainibu makes the Valmierans shy." "But Gainibu has a little sense - as much as you can expect from a Valmieran, anyhow," Rogelio said. "He doesn't try to make his people into something they're not." The captain waved a hand. "There! You see, my friend? Between us, we've solved all the problems in the world." "All but one: how to get the world to pay any attention to us," Fernao said. His sardonic streak made a good counter to Rogelio's extravagances. When it came to running the Leopardess, though, the captain was all business. "If we are sailing an evasive course, my sorcerous friend, should we not be shifting ley lines soon?" "If we really wanted an evasive course, we would sail, with canvas and masts, as they did in the days of the Kaunian Empire," Fernao said. "If we did that, we could slip by Sibiu close enough to spit, and we'd never be noticed. " "Oh, aye, no doubt," Rogelic, said, arching his eyebrows. "And if a storm b1cw up at the wrong time, it'd fling us on to the Rocks of Cluj, too. No, thank you! They might have been men in those days, but they were madmen, if anybody wants to know what I think. Sailing by wind and by guess, without the earth's energy matrix to draw on? You'd have to be a madman to try that." "No, just an ignorant man - or a yachtsman," Fernao said. "Not being either of those myself. . ." He drew from around his neck an amulet of lodestone and amber set in gold. Holding it between the palms of his hands, he felt of the energy flowing through the ley line along which the Leopardess cruised. He could not have put into words the sensation that passed through him, but he understood what it meant. "Three minutes, Captain, perhaps four, before our line intersects the next." 28 Harry Turtledove "Time enough for me to get to the wheel myself, then," Rogelio said. "That chucklehead of a helmsman we've got would likely be picking his nose or playing with himself when you signaled, and then we'd just keep barreling along, probably night down the Sibs' throats." Without waiting for an answer, he hurtied away. Fernao knew he was maligning the helmsman. He also knew Rogelio knew he was being out- rageous, and that the captain always used the fellow with great courtesy when they were together. Extravagant Rogelio was; simple, no. And then the mage forgot about Rogelio, forgot about everything but the sensation trickling out of the amulet and through him. He was not so much its interpreter as its conduit, in the same way that the ley line was a conduit for the energy the amulet sensed. He leaned a little as the trickle shifted, then thrust his right hand high into the air. The Leopardess swung to starboard, the deck heeling under Fernao's feet. No mere sailing ship could have turned so sharply; the motion was almost as if a geometer had scribed a right angle. Fernao could not see the crossing of the ley lines, but he did not need to see them. He had other senses. As soon as he was sure the turn was good and true, he slid the amulet's chain back over his head, returning the familiar weight to where it nor- mally rested, just above his heart. From the bridge, Rogelio waved to him. He waved back. He took pride in what he did, and in doing it well. And then, suddenly, he frowned. He yanked out the amulet once more and held it between his hands. He waved to the bridge again, urgently this time. "Captain!" he shouted. "We're going to have com- pany. "What's toward?" Rogelio shouted back, cupping his hands in front of his mouth to make a megaphone. "Quiver in the ley line, Captain - no, quivers." Fernao corrected him- self "Two ships on this line, heading our way. Maybe an hour out from us, maybe a little less." Rogelio cursed. "They'll know we're here, too?" he demanded. "Unless their mages are asleep, yes," Fernao answered. More curses came from the captain of the Leopardess. Then he grasped for a bright side to the unwelcome news. "They wouldn't by any chance by Algarvian ships come to escort us into port?" Fernao frowned once more; that hadn't occurred to him. He concen- INTo THE DAP-KNESS 29 trated on the amulet. "I don't think they're Algarvian," he said at last, "but I can't be sure. Sibiu and Algarve use about the same ley magic, not much different from ours. They aren't Valmierans; I'm sure of that. Valmlera andjelgava have their own style.' Rogelio came forward, to be able to talk without screaming. "They're going to be Sibs, all right," he said. "Now life gets interesting." "We're neutrals," Fernao said. "Sibiu needs our trade more than Algarve does: those islands don't come close to raising everything the Sibians want. If they try to block us, they go under embargo. You'd have to be a lackwit to think King Vitor would say something like that with- out meaning it, and the Sibs aren't lackwits." "They're in a war," Rogelio said. "You don't think straight when you re in a war. Anyone who doesn't know that is a lackwit, too, my dear mage. "As may be." Fernao bowed with exquisite courtesy. "I tell you this, though, my dear captain: if Sibiu interferes very much with Lagoan ship- ping, Vitor won'tiust embargo them. He will go to war, and that fight is one Sibiu can't win." "The Sibs against Algarve and us?" Rogelio pursed his lips, then nodded. "Well, you're night about that, though I'm hanged if I fancy the notion of allying with King Mezentio. " "We wouldn't be allies, just people with the same enemies," Fernao said. "Unkerlant and Kuusamo are both fighting the Gyongyos, but they aren't allles." "Would you ally with the Unkerlanters? I'd almost sooner pucker up and kiss Mezentio's bald head," Rogello returned. Then he bared his teeth in a horrible grimace. "If the Sibs could talk Kuusamo into jump- ing on our backs, though-" "That won't happen," Fernao said, and hoped he was right. He had reason to think so, anyhow: "Kuusamo won't get into two wars at the same time." Rogello grunted. "Mm, maybe not. Iwouldn't want to be in two wars at once. By the king's beard, I wouldn't even want to be in one war at oncc. A hail from the crow's nest made him turn: "Two ships on the west- em horizon, sir! They look like Siblan frigates." Rogello dashed for the bridge. Fernao peered west. The lean shark 30 Harry Turtlcdove shapes swelled rapidly: Sibian frigates sure enough, bristling with sticks and with egg-tossers whose glittering spheroids could disable a ship at a range of several miles. The Leopardess could neither fight them nor out- run them. "Master mage, they're hailing us," Rogelio called. "You speak Sibian, don't you? Mine is foul, and the bastard I'm talking to doesn't know much Lagoan." "Yes, I speak it." Fernao hurried toward the bridge. Sibian, Algarvian, and Lagoan were related tongues, but the first two were brothers, with Lagoan a distant cousin that had dropped inflections the others shared and borrowed words from both Kuusaman and the Kaunian languages. The mage stared into the Leopardess's crystal at a man in a sea-green Sibian naval uniform. Fernao identified himself in Sibian, then asked, "Who are you, and what do you require?" "I am Captain Propatriu of the Impaler, Royal Sibian Navy," the man replied, the words echoing from the glass. "You are to stop for boarding and inspection." Rogelio shook his head when the mage translated. "No," Fernao said. "We are on our lawful occasions. You trifle with us at your peril. "You are bound for Algarve," Captain Propatriu said. "We will search you. "No," Fernao repeated. "King Vitor has ordered us to allow no inter- ference with our commerce with any kingdom, on pain of embargo or worse against the violator. Can Sibiu afford that?" "Stinking, arrogant Lagoans," Propatriu muttered. Fernao pretended not to hear. The Sibian naval officer gathered himself and spoke directly into the crystal once more: "You will wait." The polished gem went blank. "What's he doing?" Rogeho asked. "Calling home for instructions, unless I'm wrong," Fernao answered. I If he was wrong, things were liable to get sticky in a hurry. But Captain Propatriu reappeared in the crystal a couple of minutes later. "Pass on," he growled, looking and sounding as if he hated Lagoans. He added, "My curses go with you," and vanished once more. Rogelio and Fernao let out sighs of relief The Lxopardess shd between the two Sibian frigates and sped on toward Algarve. HajaJ rode from King Shazli's palace to the Unkerlanter minist i Bishah with all the eagerness of a man going to have a tooth pulled. He like Kin Shazli like all Zuwa zin with a barleycorn's weight of sense I their heads re rded Zuwnvza's immense southern nelohbor with th wary attention any house cat rinight give a lion living next door The sun blazed down almost vertically from a blue enamel sky Zuwayza projected farther north than any other kingdom of Derlaval. Despite that tropic brilliance, most of the men and women on the streets wore only sandals and broad-brimmed hats, with nothing in between. With their dark brown skins, they took even the fiercest sun in stride. In deference to Unkerlanter sensibilities, HajaJ had donned a cotton tunic that covered him from neck to knee. He'd never seen any sense to clothes till his first winter at the university in Trapani, before the Six Years' War broke out. He still didn't see any sense to them in Bishah climate, but reckoned them part of the price he paid for being a diplomat. Unkerlanter soldiers stood guard outside the ministry. They wore tunics, too, dull gray ones jarringly out of place in a city of whitewash and glowing golden sandstone. Sweat stained and darkene t e tunics un er the men's arms and across their chests. T oug su ring in w at was r them dreadful heat, they held themselves motionless - all but t eir eyes, whic ungrily llowed every pretty young uwayz woman w ng past. HajaJ laughed, but only inside where it did not show Kin Swernmel's minister to Zuw za was a dour, middle-aged man named Ansovald. Maybe he had a magic that prevented sweat, or maybe he was lust too stubborn to permit any such mere human failing However he manaved it, his tunic and his forehead remained dry "In the name of my king, I greet you," he said to HajaJ after a servant 32 Harry Turtledove had escorted the Zuwayzi foreign minister to his chamber. "That you are so punctual shows your efficiency. "I thank you. And in the name of my king, I greet you in return," Hajaj* replied. He and Ansovald spoke Algarvian, in which they were both fluent. Ha~aj thought Swemmel would have been efficient to send to Bishah a minister who spoke Zuwayzi, but saying as much struck him as undiplomatic. He himself understood more of the Unkerlanter lan- guage than he let on. As would any Zuwayzi in sinuilar circumstances, he thought, I understand more Unkerlanter than I want. "Well, what is the point of this meeting?" Ansovald demanded. Abrupt as an Unkerlanter was a common Zuwayzi phrase. Had Ha~aj been visiting one of his countrymen, they would have shared tea and wine and cakes and small talk before eventually getting down to business. Had Ansovald come to the palace, Hajaj would also have gone through the leisurely rituals of hospitality, as much to annoy Swernmel's envoy as for the sake of form. Here, though, Unkerlanter rules prevailed. Hajaj* sighed, not quite invisibly. "The point of this meeting, your Excellency, is to convey my sovereign's displeasure with recent provocations along the border between our two kingdoms," Hajaj' said. King Shazli was hopping mad and scared green, both at the same time. Displeasure suggested that as diplomatically as possible. Ansovald's massive shoulders moved up and down in a shrug. "I deny that any such provocations have taken place," he said. Haijaj' reached into a leather case and produced a short scroll. "Your Excellency, I have here a list of Zuwayzi border guards and soldiers killed, border guards and soldiers wounded, and Zuwayzi property on Zuwayzi territory destroyed during Unkerlanter incursions this season, and Unkerlanter buildings and encampments erected on land rightfully under the rule of King Shazli." Ansovald read through the document - written, like most diplomatic correspondence, in classical Kaunian - and then shrugged again. "All of these alleged incidents took place on Unkerlanter soil," he said. "If any- one is the provocateur here, it is Zuwayza." "Now really, your Excellency!" Hajaj exclaimed, indignation over- coming diplomacy for a moment. He pointed to the map of Zuwayza on the wall behind Ansovald. "Please look again. Some of these incidents INTo THE DARKNESS 33 occurred as much as ten or fifteen miles north of the border between our two kingdoms established by the Treaty of Bludenz." "Ali, the Treaty of Bludenz." Ansovald's smile was anything but pleasant. "Kyot the traitor dickered the Treaty of Bludenz with you Zuwayzin, thinking to be efficient: by not fighting your secession, he had more resources to use against King Swemmel. Much good it did him." The unpleasant smile got broader. "Why should King Swemmel pay the least heed to anything the traitor did?" HaijaJ was no longer indignant. He was appalled. He briefly wondered whether Unkerlant would have been a more pleasant neighbor had Kyot won the Twinkings War. He doubted it: Unkerlanters, worse luck, were Unkerlanters. Speaking now with great care, he said, "King Swernmel has conformed to the terms of the Treaty of Bludenz since gaining sole rule over Unkerlant. You would not be here as his minister, your Excellency, did he not recognize Zuwayza as a free and independent kingdom. Would it be efficient for him to overturn a policy that has given him good results?" Not even the phrase that seemed so magic to Unkerlanter ears swayed Swernmel's envoy. Shrugging yet again, Ansovald said, "What is efficient changes with circumstances. In any case, the protest you have conveyed from King Shazli is rejected. Have you anything more, or are we through?" Y_ cr- Even by Unkerlanter standards, that was brusque to the point of rude- ness. "Please inform King Swemmel that we shall defend our borders," Ha~aj said as he rose to go. He added a parting blaze: "Our legitimate borders." Ansovald yawned. Legitimacy did not concern him. Spitefully, HajaJJ wondered if it had concerned his father. Outside on the street, the Zuwayzi foreign rmimster almost stripped off his tunic right there in front of the Unkerlanter ministry. That wouldn't have shown the stolid, sweating guards anything they wanted to see, but it would have relieved his feelings. Not without regret, he restrained himself. As he rode back to the palace, he morosely watched sweat darken the cotton. Once at the palace - a building whose thick walls of mud bn'ck helped fight the heat - he did pull the tunic off over his head. King Shazli's guardsmen grinned sympathetically as he sighed with relief "Out of the 34 Harry Turtledove funeral wrappings, eh, your Excellency?" one of them said, white teeth shining in his dark face. "Even so." HaJjaJ rolled the tunic into a ball and stuffed it into his case. The breeze felt sweet on his skin. He waved to one of Shazli's servitors. "Can his Majesty see me now? I'm just back from consulting with Ansovald of Unkerlant. " Neither by word nor by expression did he imply the meeting with Ansovald had gone anything but well. That was no one's business but the sovereign's. "Of course, your Excellency," the servant answered. "He has been awaiting your return." Shazli received his foreign minister in a chamber off the throne room. HaijaJ bowed low to the king of Zuwayza, who, without his golden circlet of rank, might have been anyone: in the absence of clothes, status could be hard to gauge. Shazli was a medium-sized, rather pudgy man in his early thirties, a bit less than half HajaJ's age. His father had regained Zuwayza's freedom; some generations before, an Unkerlanter army that forced its way through the desert to Bishah had brought the land into the muscular embrace of its larger neighbor. A serving woman carried in ajar of wine, a teapot, and a plate of honey cakes fragrant with cinnamon. She was comely; HsjJaJ admired her as he admired the elegant ivory figurines adorning the chamber, and with hardly more desire. Being habitual to Zuwayzin, nudity did not inflame them. Driinking and eating and chatting with the king helped HajaJ relax; the thudding urgency he'd felt while meeting with the Unkerlanter minister receded, at least a little. After a while, Shazli said, "And how badly did Ansovald hurry you today? Efficiency." He rolled his eyes to show what he thought of the term, or at least of the way the Unkerlanters used it. "Your Majesty, I have never known worse," HaJjaJ said with feeling. "Never. And he rejected your protest out of hand. And he did something no Unkerlanter has ever done before: he questioned the legitimacy of the Treaty of Bludenz." The king hissed like a sand viper. "No, Unkerlant has never presumed to do that before," he agreed. "I mislike the omen." "As do 1, your Majesty, as do I," HaJjaJ said. "Up till now, we have been lucky in our relations with the Unkerlanters. They suffered hideously in the Six Years' War and then, as if they were not satisfied, they warred among themselves. That gave your father of splendid AMER-, W INTo THE DARKNESS 35 memory the chance to remind them we still remembered how to be our own masters. Afterwards, they were busy picking up the pieces they themselves had dropped." "And after that, for good measure, they marched straight into a sense- less war with Gyongyos," King Shazli added. "Were King Swernmel half as efficient as he thinks he is, he would be twice as efficient as he truly is." "Even so, your Majesty, and elegantly phrased." Hajaj smiled and sipped at his wine. "Of course, Ekrekek Arpad also took advantage of Unkerlant's internecine stn*fe to make his own realin grow at Swernmel's expense. "And Swernmel has spent the last several years trying to take his revenge," Shazli said. His eyes narrowed; he looked very crafty indeed. "Now, I appreciate revenge as much as the next man - I could scarcely be a Zuwayzi did I not, eh? But a man who does not weigh what he spends against what he gets is a fool." "Seen through King Swernmel's eyes, Gyongyos is not the only king- dom against which Unkerlant needs to be avenged," Hajaj said. "I sup- pose that explains some of Ansovald's insolence." He started to take another sip of wine, but paused with the goblet halfway to his lips. "I should attune my crystal to that of the Gyongyosian minister. No. I should pay a call on Horthy myself " "Why say you that?" King Shazli asked. "Because, your Majesty, if Unkerlant is seeking to patch up a truce in the far west - or if King Swernmel has already patched up such a truce - we may be next on the list for a visit from our friends," HaJjaJ replied. "I don't think even Swernmel is stupid enough to get into two wars at once. Should he abandon one . . Shazli's eyes widened. "Will Horthy tell you?" "I don't see why he shouldn't," HaJjaj said. "By the very nature of things, Gyongyos and Zuwayza can hardly be enermies. We are too far apart; all we have in common is a border with Unkerlant." He opened his leather case and took out the tunic he'd stuffed into it. With a mar- tyred sigh, he donned the garment once more. "I'd better go now, your Majesty. I don't think this will wait." ~ I Skarnu stood against a tree to ease himself. Since the tree was a few miles inside Algarve, the young Vahmieran marquis consoled himself by 36 Harty Turtledove thinking he was pissing on the enemies of his kingdom. He would have felt niore consolation, though, had the invasion pushed farther and done more. Atter buttoning his fly, he rejoined his company. His noble birth made him an officer. Till he was mobilized, he'd thought his noble birth also prepared him for command. He was certainly used to giving orders, even if he didn't enjoy it quite so much as his sister Krasta did. But he'd soon discovered the difference between giving orders in a mansion and giving them to soldiers: the former sort merely required obedience from the ser- vants, while the latter also needed to make sense. "Where now, Captain?" asked Raimu, the company's senior sergeant. He was senior enough to have a lot of silver threads in the gold of his hair, senior enough to have fought as a youth in the Six Years' War. But his father sold sausages for a living, so he was unlikely ever to rise above senior sergeant. If he resented that, he hid it very well. After scratching his head, Skarnu pointed west and answered, "Forward to the edge of open country. If there are any more Algarvians lurking here in the woods, we need to flush them out." He scratched again. He itched all the time. He wondered if he was lousy. The idea made his flesh crawl, but he knew it could happen to soldiers in wartime. Raunu considered, then nodded., "Aye, about the best thing we can do, I reckon." He turned Skamu's notion into precise, cautious reality, ordering scouts ahead and to either side and sending the rest of the com- pany forward by sections along three different game tracks. In fact, as Skarnu had quickly realized, Raunu ran the company. He knew how to do the job, whereas Skarnu's presence, while ornamental, was anything but necessary. That had mortified the marquis, seerming an offense against both propriety and honor. "Don't fret yourself about it, lord," Raunu had said when he broached the issue. "There's three kinds of noble officers. Some don't know any- thing and stay out of their sergeants' way. They're harmless. Some don't, know anything and give forth with all sorts of orders anyhow." He'd shuddered. "They're dangerous. And some don't know anything and try and learn. Give 'ern time, and they're apt to make pretty fair soldiers." Skarmi had never before heard such a blunt appraisal of his class. None of the servants back at his mansion would have dared speak to him thus. But he was not Raunu's master and employer; King Gainibu was. That INTo THE DARKNESS 37 made the sergeant's relationship with a noble also serving the king differ- ent from that of a cook or butler. Skarnu was doing his best to fall into the third class of officer. He hoped he was succeeding, but hadn't had the nerve to ask. Now, stick at the ready, he paced along the gloomy track. The Algarvians hadn't offered much resistance at the border, falling back before the advancing Valmierans toward the line of forts they'd built about twenty miles inside their territory. The Duke of Klaipeda, who commanded the Valmierans, was exultant; he'd published an order of the day reading, "The enemy, beset by many foes, ingloriously flees before our triumphant advance. Soon he must either give battle on our terms or yield his land to our victorious arms." That sounded splendid to Skarnu till he thought about it for a little while. If the Algarvians were ingloriously fleeing, why didn't the illustri- ous Duke of Klaipeda put more pressure on them? Skarmi knew himself to be imperfectly trained in the military arts. He hoped the same did not hold true for the illustrious duke. A beam from a stick struck the trunk of an elm a couple of feet above his head. Steam spurted from the tree, smelling of hot sap. Though imperfectly trained in the military arts, Skarmi knew what to do when people started blazing at him: he threw himself flat and crawled on his belly toward some bushes by the side of the track. If the Algarvian couldn't see him, he couldn't shoot. Another Valmieran went down, too, this one with a harsh cry of pain. From cover, Skarmi shouted, "Hunt the enemy down!" He got up into a crouch and then dashed forward, diving down on to his belly behind a stout pine. Another beam slammed into the tree. Its resinous sap had a tangy odor very different from that of the elm. Skarnu was glad the woods were moist; the fight would have fired drier country. He peered up over the top of a gnarled root. Spying a bit of tan among green bushes, he stuck his finger into the stick's recess and blazed away ~t it. The leaves the beam touched went sere and brown inan instant, as if winter had come all at once to that corner of the world. An Algarvian soldier had been hiding in those bushes, too. He let out a horrible cry in his ugly, trifling native tongue. Another Valn-iieran blazed at him from off to one side of Skarnu. That cry abruptly cut off 38 Harry Turtledove "Come on, men!" Skarnu shouted. "Forward! King Gainibu and victory!" "Gainibu!" his men shouted. They did not rush straight at the Algarvians lurking among the trees. Such headlong dash was all very well in an entertainment. In real war, it brought nothing but gruesome casualties. The Valimerans darted from tree to tree, from bush to rock, one group blazing to make the enemy keep his head down while another advanced. A couple of soldiers went staggering back with wounds, one with an arm over the shoulder of a healthy comrade. One or two men went down and would not get up again. The rest, though, drove the Algarvians, who did not seem present in any great numbers, before them. Once, by the shouts - no, the screams - the fighting came to such close quarters that it went on with knives and reversed sticks rather than with beams, but that did not last long. Valmieran voices soon rang out in triumph. Pushing forward as he did, paying more heed to what the enemy soldiers in tan kilts were trying to do than to exactly where he was, Skarnu was sur- prised when he burst out of the woods. He stood a moment, blinking in the bright afternoon sun that beat into his face. Ahead lay fields of barley and oats going from green to gold, and beyond them an Algarvian farming village. The sturdy buildings would have looked more picturesque had he not been able to make out Algarvian troops moving among them. Algarvian troops rather closer by could make him out. One of them blazed at him from the cover of the growing grain. The beam went wide. Cursing, Skarnu ducked back among the trees. He went some little dis- tance along the edge of the forest before peering out again. This time, he was careful to keep a screen of leaves and branches in front of his face. As if by sorcery, Sergeant Raunu silently materialized beside him. "Wouldn't want to try crossing that without a lot of friends along," Raunu remarked in matter-of-fact tones. "Truth is, I wouldn't want to cross that even with a lot of friends along, but some of us might get to the other side if we did it like that." Skarnu's voice was dry: "I hadn't plann e-d on ordering us to cross those fields and seize that village." "Powers above and powers below' be praised," Raunu muttered. Not knowing whether he was supposed to have heard him, Skarnu pretended he hadn't. He pulled a map out of a tunic pocket. "That should INTo THE DARKNESS I em de. dis- ~ he ose 39 be the village of Bonorva," he said. "It's past those woods on the other wide that the Algarvians are supposed to have their main belt of fortifi- cations." Raunu nodded. "Aye, that makes sense, lord. The forts are too far back for us to fling eggs at 'em from our side of the border." Skarnu whistled thoughtfully. That hadn't occurred to him. Raunu might be a sausage-seller's son, but he was no fool. Many Valn-iieran nobles assumed all those below them to be fools: Skarnu chuckled, think- ing of his sister. He had less of that attitude in him, but he wasn't free of It, either. "They'll have to bring everyone up for the assault on the forts," he said. "That will make taking Bonorva look like a walk in Two Rivers Park by comparison." "It'll cost a deal of blood, all right," Raunu agreed. "I wonder how many who hit the forts from this side will make it through to the other." "However many they are, they'll be in position to peel the shell off Algarve, the way you do with a plump lobster," Skarnu said. "I wouldn't know about that, sir," Raunu said. "It's bread and sausage and fruit for the likes of me. But you can't peel anything if you don't get through. Anybody who fought in the Six Years' War would tell you that. All of Valmiera's generals, like those of any other kingdom, were vet- erans of the war a generation earlier. But Skarnu was not thinking of other kingdoms; he was thinking of his own. "That's why we haven't pressed our attacks harder!" he exclaimed with the air of a man who'd had a revelation. "The commanders dread the casualties they'd cost." "Commanders who don't dread casualties don't stay in command, either," Raunu said. "After a while, the troops won't stand any more. jelgava had mutinies during the Six Years' War. The Unkerlanter armies that were fighting Algarve mutinied so they could go off and fight each other - Unkerlanters are fools, you ask me. And finally the Algarvians mutinied, too. That's what won the war for us, more than anything else." It was history to Skarnu; Raunu had lived it. Skarnu said, "May they mutiny again, then. If they didn't want a war, they shouldn't have gone tramping into Ban'." "I suppose that's so, sir." Raunu sighed, then chuckled. "I'm an old soldier at heart, and I make no bones about it. I'd sooner be back in the 40 Harty TurtIcdove barracks drinking beer than here in the middle of this powersforsaken Country." "Can't blame you for that, but when the king and his rministers order, we obey," Skarnu said, and the sergeant nodded. Skarnu withdrew deeper into the woods, then scribbled a note describing his company's position and called for a runner. When a man came up, Skarnu gave him the note and said, "Take this back to headquarters. If they plan on bring- ing reinforcements forward, hurry back to let me know. That will ten me whether to prepare another attack or to settle in and defend what we've gained here." "Aye, sir -just as you say." The runner hurried off. "The Algarvians will have something to say about whether we attack or defend, too, sir," Raunu observed, pointing west. "Min, that's true," Skarnu said, not altogether happily. "That's one reason I wish we'd pressed this opening attack harder: the better to impose our will on the enemy." Raunu grunted. "The Algarvians have plenty of will of their own. I'm surprised they haven't tried imposing theirs on us." "They're beset from four sides at once," Skarnu said. "B~fore long, they'll break somewhere." Raunu grunted again. A few minutes'lat-er,"the runner came back with orders for Skarnu's men to consolidate their posi- tion. He obeyed, as he was obliged to obey. If he muttered under his breath, that was his business, and no one else's. High above Vanal's head, a dragon screamed. She craned her neck, trying to find the tiny dot in the sky. At last, she did. The dragon was fly- ing from west to east, which meant it belonged to Forthweg, not Algarve. Vanal waved, though the man aboard the dragon could not possibly have seen her. Brivibas walked on for several steps before realizing she was no longer beside him. He looked back over his shoulder. "The work won't wait," he snapped, exasperated enough to speak Forthwegian instead of Kaunian without even knowing he'd done it. am sorry, my grandfather." Vanal spoke Kaunian. Her grandfather would have given her much more of the rough side of his tongue if she'd made his slip. He was so confident of his inalterable Kaunianity, he could slip its bounds now and then. If anyone younger slipped, though, he INTo THE DARKNESS would fret for days about dilution. e. ave ther he'd ould I he 41 Vanai hurlied to catch up with him. Her short, tight tunic and close- fitting trousers rubbed at her as she ran. She envied the Forthwegian girls her age their comfortable, loose-fitting long tunics. Such clothes suited Forthweg's warm, dry climate far better than what she wore. But the folk of the Kaunian Empire had worn short, tight tunics and trousers, and so their descendants perforce did likewise. "My grandfather, are you certain you know where this old power point lay?" she asked after a long, sweaty while. "We've walked more than halfway to Gromheort, or so it seems." "Say not Gromheort," Brivibas replied. "Say rather Jekabpils, the name the city knew in more glorious times." On he went, tireless for an old man: he had to be nearly sixty. To Vanal, at sixteen, that certainly seemed ancient. Her grandfather took from the pack he wore on his back an instrument of his own design: two wings of gold leaf suspended inside a glass sphere by gold wire. He murmured words of command in a Kaunian dialect archaic even when the Empire was at its height. One of the wings twitched, "Ali, good. This way," Briivibas said, and set off across a meadow, through an almond grove, and then into a nasty stretch of bushes and shrubs, most of which proved well equipped with spines and thorns. At last, after what seemed to Vanal far too long, he stopped. Both gold wings were fluttering, neither higher than the other. Btivibas beamed. "Here we are." "Here we are," Vanal agreed in a hollow voice. She had her doubts anyone else had ever been here before. In lieu of stating them more openly, she asked, "Did the ancient Kaunians truly know of this place?" "I believe they did," Brivibas answered. "The evidence from inscn*p- tions at the King's University in Eoforwic strongly suggests they did. But, so far as I know, no one has yet performed the sorcery which alone can transform supposition into knowledge. That is why we are here." "Yes, my grandfather," Vanal said resignedly. He was very good to her; he'd raised her since her parents had died in a wrecked caravan when she was hardly more than a baby. He'd given her a splendid education in both Kaunian and modern subjects. She found his work as an archaeo- logical mage interesting, sometimes even fascinating. ff only he didn't treat me like nothing but an extra pair of hands when we're in thefield, she thought. 42 Harry Turtledove He set down his pack. With a sigh of relief, she did the same with hers. "Now, my granddaughter," Briivibas said, "if you would be good enough to fetch me the green medius stone, we may begin You may begin, you mean, Vanai thought. But she rummaged through the pack till she found the weathered green stone. "Here you are," she said, and handed it to him. "Ali, thank you, my granddaughter. The medius stone, when properly activated, removes the blindness from our eyes and lets us see what other- wise could no longer be seen," Bnivibas said. But, as he chanted, and as Vanal unobtrusively wiped her hands on her trousers - handling the stone irritated her skin - she wondered if, when the spell was complete, it would show only ancient thorn bushes as opposed to modern ones. No matter what the fluttering gold leaves declared, she doubted any power point had ever existed here. Her mind was elsewhere, anyhow. When Brivibas paused between spells, she asked, "My grandfather, how can you so calmly investigate the past when all the world around you is going up in flames?" Bri'vibas shrugged. "The world will do as it will do, regardless,of whether I investigate or not. And so - why should I not learn what I can~ Adding some small bits to the total of human knowledge may perhaps keep us from going up in flames, as you put it, some time in the future." His mouth twisted. "I would have hoped it had done so already, but no one sees all his hopes granted." After fiddling with the latitude screw and the leveling vernier on his portable sundial, he grunted softly. "And now, back to it." And now, Vanai, shut your trap, she thought. But her grandfather was expert at what he did. She watched closely as he evoked power from a power point forgotten since the days of the Empire. It was here after all, she thought. And then, at his word of command, the scene before her suddenly shifted. She clapped her hands together: she was looking back at the long-vanished days when the Kaunian Empire stretched over a great part of northeastern Derlavai. Naturally, Brivibas's use of power had summoned up the image of another time when power was used here. Vanai stared at ancient Kaunians. They went on about their business; they could not sense her or her grandfather. If she walked over the front edge of the stretch of cleared ground that had appeared before her, she wouldn't be able to turn INTo THE DARKNESS W, as er a e of icnt her h of turn 43 around and see the other side of the scene from long ago. She would Just see the scrub through which she'd trudged to get here. The ancient Kaunians wore woolen trousers, baggier than hers; some had on tunics of wool, too, others of linen. Some of the tunics and trousers were undyed, some dark blue or muddy brown: no bright colors anywhere. Almost all the clothes were visibly dirty, and so were a fair number of the Kaunians. People who'd worked with archaeological magic tended to be less romantic about the glories of the past than the bulk of the populace. Bri'vibas sketched the scene, rapidly and accurately. Skill with a pencil was part of fieldwork. "The men are wearing beards," he remarked, "and the women have their hair piled high on their heads with curls," he remarked. "From what period would that make this scene date?" Vanai frowned as she thought. "About the reign of Verigas ll," she replied at last. Her grandfather beamed. "Very good! Yes, about two hundred years before the Algarvian Irruption - so-called - wrecked the Empire. Ali!" He readied a new leaf for sketching. "Here we have the action, I think." . Four Kaunian men carried in a woman who was lying on a litter. She looked not far from the point of death. A fifth man, in cleaner clothes than the litter-bearers, led a sheep after them. He drew a knife from his belt and tested the edge with his thumb. Evidently being satisfied, he turned so that his back was to the modern observers and began magic of his own. Brivibas exclaimed in frustration: "I wanted to read his lips!" After raising one hand to the sky and pointing with the other - the one holding the knife - to the power point, the ancient medical mage cut the sheep's throat. As blood poured down, the woman rose from the litter. She still seemed less than perfectly well, but far better than she had a moment before. As she was bowing to the man who had helped her, the scene faded away, to be replaced once more by modem underbrush. "Even then, they knew life force helps make sorcery stronger," Vanai said in musing tones. "But they didn't know about ley lines: they still traveled on horseback and carried things in oxcarts." "Our ancestors were splendid intuitive sorcerers," Brivibas said. "They had no true understanding of the mathematical relationships by which magic is harnessed though. Ley lines being a far more subtle 44 Harry Turtledove phenomenon than power points, it is no wonder they failed either to dis- cover them or to predict their existence." He muttered something in Forthwegian that sounded angry, then returned to Kaunian: "A pity I could not learn more of the healing spell that fellow used." With what looked like deliberate effort, he forced himself back toward calm. "At the very least, though, I can now definitively document this power point and its use in imperial times. And let us see what the learned Professor Frithstan thinks of that!" He held out his hands in appeal to Vanai: I ask you, have Forthwegians any business meddling in Kaunian history?" "My grandfather, they say it is also the history of Forthweg," she answered. "Some of them, from the books and journals I have read, are scholars to be respected." "A few," Briivibas sniffed. "A handful. Most write for the greater glory of Forthweg, a subject, believe me, of scant intrinsic value." He fumed all the way back to the village of Oyngestun, about ten miles west of Gromheort, where he and Vanal made their home. Only when he started tramping along the dusty main street of the village did he fall silent; Forthwegians in Oyngestun outnumbered people of Kauman blood four or five to one, and failed to appreciate the way the elder folk looked down on them as barbarians. Falling silent didn't always help. A shopkeeper came out to stand on the board sidewalk in front of his sleepy place of business and call, "Hey, old man, have fun playing with your shadows and ghosts?" He set hands on hips and laughed. "Yes, thank you," Bn*vibas answered in reluctant Forthwegian. He stalked along stiff-backed, like a cat with ruffled dignity. That only made the shopkeeper laugh louder. He reached out with one of his big, beefy hands, palm up, fingers spread and slightly hooked, as if he were about to grab Vanal's backside. Rude Forthwegian men - often a redundancy - enjoyed aiming that gesture at trousered women of Kaunian blood. Vanal ignored it so ostentatiously, the shopkeeper had to lean against the whitewashed plaster of his front wall-to keep from falling over with what he reckoned rru'rth. Fewer young Forthwegian louts were on the streets and cluttering the taverns of Oyngestun than would have been true a few weeks earlier, though: the army had summoned them to fight the Algarvians. King Penda had also taken a fair number of men of Kaunian blood from INTo THE DARKNESS He g the rher, King from 45 Oyngestun into his service. As long as they dwelt in his realm and had blood in their veins, he didn't care what sort of blood it was. Brivibas's house was in the middle of the Kaunian section, on the west side of the village. Not all Kaunians in Oyngestun dwelt there, and a few Forthwegians lived among them, but for the most part each of the two peoples followed its own path through the world. Here and there, the two folk did mix. When Vanal saw a tall, lean man with a dark beard or a fair-haired woman who was built like a brick, she pitied their Kaunian ancestors. In a village like Oyngestun, such mingling was rare. It was not common in Gromheort, either. In worldly - Bri'vibas called it decadent - Eoforwic, though, from what Vanai had heard, it was in some circles taken for granted. "My grandfather," she said suddenly as they went inside, "you could be a scholar at the King's University, did you so choose. Why have you been content to stay here in Oyngestun all your days?" Brivibas stopped so abruptly, she almost ran into him. "Why?" he said, perhaps as much to himself as to Vanal. After a considerable pause for thought, he went on, "Here, at least, I know the Forthwegians who dis- like me because I have light hair. In the capital, I would ever be taken by surprise. Some surpnises are delightful. Some, like that one, I would sooner do without." At first, Vanai thought that was the most foolish answer she'd ever heard. The longer she thought about it, though, the more sense it made. All things considered, Istvan could have liked the island of Obuda. The weather was mild, or at least he thought so: having grown up in the domain of the Hetman of Zalaber in central Gyongyos, his standards of comparison were not stringent. The soil was rich - again, by his standards. He 1 not mind nuilitary discipline; his father had clouted him harder than his sergeant did. The Obudans were friendly, the women often delight- fiifly so. They said they preferred Arpad, the Ekrekek of Gyongyos, to the Seven Princes of Kuusamo as their overlord. When Istvan remarked on that in the barracks one morning, Sergeant jokal laughed at him. "They're whores, is what they are," jokai said. "Two years ago, before we bounced the Kuusamans off this rock, you'd better believe the natives were telling them how wonderful they were, W7 I I 46 Harry Turtledove "It Could be, I suppose," Istvan said. "Could be, nothing - it is.". Jokal spoke with great assurance. "And if those slant-eyed whoresons throw us off of here again, the Obudans'll tell lem what great heroes they are. And if any of our boys didn't get away, they'll tell the Kuusamans where they're hiding." Arguing with a sergeant wasn't smart, not unless you were fond of latrine detail. Istvan wasn't. He poured down his morning beer - that was brought from home, for the stuff the natives brewed wasn't fit to drink; it was, in his view, barely fit for removing varnish - and went outside. The barracks layjust outside of Sorong, the biggest town on the island, which didn't boast more than three, plus a couple of smaller villages. Sorong was halfway up a hill the Obudans called Mount Sorong. That made Istvan want to laugh. If the natives ever saw a real mountain, like the ones that towered above his own home village, they'd take that name and throw it into the sea: the stubby little hill didn't come close to deserving it. But, since it was the highest gTound on Obuda, though, Istvan could see a long way from where he stood. Down below were small patches of timber and long stretches of wheat and barley fields and vegetable gardens. Out past them, the surf rolled up the beach, then slid back down again. Istvan had never seen the ocean before he went into the army. Its immensity fascinated him. He could spy a couple of other islands, blue and misty in the distance. Otherwise, the water went on forever: or as far as his eye could reach, which amounted to the same thing. He was used to looking up if he wanted to see the sky, not straight out. When he did look up, he spied a couple of dragons circling overhead, so high that, even with their enormous wingspans, they seemed only dots, midges seen at arm's length. They floated as high as any of the peaks serrating the skyline back home. Up there, the air got cold and thin. The fliers swaddled themselves in furs and leather, the way hunters did when they went after snow leopards or marauding mountain apes. His reveries were rudely interrupted when Sergeant jokai came out behind him. Sergeants were unlikely to know any other way to interrupt a revenie. "Time on your hands, eh?" Jokai said. "That's a shame. That's a crying shame. Why don't you go police the dragon pens? The scouts won't be back for a while, that's plain." "Have a heart, Sergeant," Istvan pleaded. i W__ JW, "I was breathing," Istvan answered bitterly. at Turul chuckled again. "Don't do too much of that while you're work- e ing, or you'll be sorry after-wards." "I'm already sorry," Istvan said. All that did was make the dragon- to keeper laugh louder than ever. Istvan himself was something less than amused. Mucking out after horses or unicorns was nasty, smelly work. d Mucking out after dragons was nasty, smelly, dangerous work. of He shoveled dung and raked foul straw, doing his best not to let any ns. of e fetid stuff - and it was far more fetid than what horses and unicorns produced - touch bare skin. The brimstone and quicksilver dragons ate Its ~along with their meat made their wastes not just odorous but corrosive. lue They also made their wastes toxic, for those who dealt with them over far years. Mad as a dragonkeeper was a common expression, but not one Istvan sed had the nerve to use around Turul. Istvan cursed when a couple of drops of dragon piss splashed up and ad, caught him on the arm above the gauntlet. The stuff burned like acid. It nly was acid. He snatched up some clean straw from a comer of the pen and eaks scrubbed it off. It left behind a nasty red welt. The A copper-skinned Obudan boy watched him, wide-eyed. Dragons fas- hen cinated the locals. Even wild ones were rare all through the long reach of islands between Kuusamo and the western mainland of Derlavai. None out of the islanders had ever imagined taming them. That a man could nide rrupt one high into the heavens left the locals astonished and awed. hat's No matter how astonished and awed they were, Istvan didn't,feel like couts being watched right now. He grabbed a ball of dragon dung with his gauntleted hand and made as if to throw it at the Obudan boy. The boy fled, shrieking with laughter. INTo THE DAR-KNESS 47 He might as well have asked for the moon. "Go draw your leathers and go get to work," jokai said implacably. He hated idleness in any form. Poor Istvan hadn't yet perfected the art of looking busy even when he wasn't. Cursing under his breath, he went over to the dragon pens - at the prescribed brisk march, because jokal was watching - and pulled on elbow-length leather gauntlets and leather shin protectors that fit over the tops of his shoes. He grabbed a rake and a broom and a pail. Turul, the head dragonkeeper, chuckled as Istvan donned the protec- tive gear. "And how did you win the prize?" he asked. I 48 Harty Turtledove Istvan laughed a little himself, some of his good humor restored. He brought the tools back to Turul and dumped the contents of the pails in a special slit trench that had been dug even farther away from the streams than the Gyongyosian soldiers' latrines. Then, with a sigh of relief, he stripped off the gauntlets and the shin protectors and hung those up, too. He hadn't even started to walk away when he saw one of the scout dragons spiralling down toward a pen he had just cleaned. He shook his fist at the great beast. "If you shit in there again, you can clean it up your- self," he called. Turul thought that was pretty funny. Istvan didn't. He meant it from the bottom of his heart. Down came the dragon, with a great fluttening of wings as it landed. The blast of wind from them almost knocked Istvan off his feet. The flier sprang off the beast's neck, secured its chain to the iron post in the center of the pen, and started to dash away. "Who set fire to your breeks?" Turul asked. "We're going to have company," the flier answered, and pointed west. He said no more, but humied away to give his superiors a detailed, account of what kind of company and how soon. Only one kind of company mattered, though: the Kuusamans. Several ley lines converged on Obuda. That was why Gyongyos and Kuusamo kept fighting over the island. The natives' sorcerers hadn't discovered ley lines. They sailed by wind and paddle; several fishing boats bobbed in the ocean off the island. "If we weren't fighting the Unkerlanters, too, we'd kick Kuusamo hard enough to make the Seven Princes leave us alone," Istvan said hotly. Turul shrugged. "If all seven of the Princes ever walked in the same line, they might do the same to us. Nobody's giving this war everything he had - and a good thing, too, says I. " Being young and from the back country, Istvan said, "Not bloody likely!" "I'll bet the recruiters smi'led when they got their hands on you." Turul smided, too, but not altogether pleasantly. Drums started thudding an alarm. Istvan forgot about the cynical dragonkeeper and ran to snatch up his stick and to assemble so an officer could send him to a battle station. He almost collided with several of his squadmates, who were also doing their best to seem seasoned soldiers. None of them had yet seen combat. Istvan was half eager, half terrified. INTo THE DAPKNESS r s 49 The Obudans had seen combat, even if they hadn't taken part in it. They had their own strong opinion on the subject, and showed it by flee- ing the town of Sorong. Some ran up toward the top of Mt. Sorong, othersjust headed off into the woods. A few carried sacks of coarse native cloth stuffed with their belongings; most didn't bother, and took off with nothing but the robes on their backs. "Have no fear, fierce warriors of Ekrekek Arpacl!" Major Kisfaludy cried. Every tawny strand of his beard seemed to quiver from great emotion. "We have a surprise in store for the Kuusamans, if those little slant-eyed demons ever dare set foot on the soil of this island." His gnin was both fierce and conspiratorial. "They can have no notion of how many dragons we've flown into Obuda since we took it back from them. " In his mind's eye, Istvan saw dragons dropping eggs around and then on Kuusaman ships that presumed to approach Obuda. He saw some of those ships burning and others fleeing east down the ley lines as fast as they could go. He joined the rest of the squad, the rest of the whole unit, in a rousing cheer. "And now, down toward the beach," Major Kisfaludy said. "If any Kuusamans are lucky enough to land on Obuda, we shall drive them back into the sea." Along with his comrades, Istvan cheered again. Wings thundered, off in the distance, as dragons hurled themselves and their fliers into the air. Istvan laughed to think of the dreadful surprise the enemy would get when flame and raw energy consumed them. If they were rash enough to set themselves against the will of Arpad the ekrekek, they deserved nothing better, not as far as he was concerned. He trotted down a path through the woods toward the beach. At the edge of the trees, sheltered among logs and rocks, stood egg-tossers and their crews, also ready to rain fire down on any Kuusamans who reached land. Istvan waved to the crews, then filed into a trench. After that, he had nothing to do but wait. He watched the dragons wing their way east against targets they could see, but which the bulge of the earth hid from his eyes. And then he watched in some surprise as dragons came out of the east toward those that had flown from Obuda. He scratched his head. Was a flight returning already? SergeantJokai cursed horribly. At last, the curses cooled to coherence: I I 1_~_ 50 Harry Turtledove "The slant-eyes have gone and loaded a ship full of dragons. Life just got uglier, aye, it did." Sure enough, while some of the Gyongyosian dragons arrowed down toward whatever Kuusaman ships lay below Istvan's horizon, others wheeled in a dance of death with the enemy's fliers. When a couple of the great beasts flew back toward Obuda, neither Istvan nor anyone else on the ground knew whether or not to blaze at them. One was plainly laboring, doing more gliding than stroking with its left wing. It crashed down on to the sand not twenty feet in front of Istvan, which let him see how badly that wing was burned. The blood- ied flier, a Gyongyosian, staggered toward the trench. "We drove 'em back!" he called, and fell on his face. A couple of soldiers ran out and scooped him up. SergeantJokal cursed again. "We drove 'em back this time," he said, "on account of we had a surprise to match their surprise, and because we spotted 'ern early. But flying dragons off a ship! The Kuusaman bastards have gone and compli- cated the war, curse 'em to powerloss. " Istvan was suddenly just as well pleased not to have received his initiation into combat, at least from the receiving end. Pekka looked out at the students filing into the auditorium. It was hardly the biggest hall at KaJ'aam City College, but that did not dismay her. Theoretical sorcery, unlike the more practical applications of the art, was not a ley line to fame or riches. Without theoretical sorcery, though, no one would ever have realized ley lines existed, let alone figured out how to use them. She set her hands on the lectern, took a deep breath, and began: before anything else, ritual. "Before the Kaunians; came, we of Kuusamo were here. Before the Lagoans came, we of Kuusamo were here. After the Kaunians; departed, we of Kuusamo were here. We of Kuusamo are here. After the Lagoans depart, we of Kuusamo shall be here." Softly, her students repeated the unadorned but proud phrases. A couple of the students were of Kaunian blood, from VaIrmi era or Jelgava; another handful were Lagoans. Their inches and beaky features and yel- low and auburn hair set them apart from the Kuusaman majority (though some who served the Seven Princes, especially from the eastern part of the realm, might almost have been Lagoans by looks). Regardless of their INTo THE DARKNESS 51 homelands, they joined in the ri tual. If they refused, they did not attend Pekka's lectures. "Mankind has used the energies manifested and released at power points since long before the beginning of recorded history," she began. Her students scribbled notes. Watching them amused her. Most of them took down everything she said, even when it was something they already knew. For those who advanced in the discipline, that would end. Theoretical sorcery was, after all, about the essential, not the accidental in which it was surrounded. "Only improvements in both the theoretical underpinnings of sorcery and in sorcerous instrumentation have enabled us to advance beyond what was known in the days of the Kaunian Empire," Pekka went on. She held up an amulet of amber and lodestone, such as a mage might use at sea. "Please note that these phenomena have gone hand in hand. Improved instruments of magecraft had yielded new data, which, in turn, have forced improvements in theory, making it correspond more closely to observed reality. And new theory has also led to new instruments to exploit and expand upon it." She turned and wrote on a large sheet of slate behind her the law of similarity - similar causes produce similar effects - and the law of contagion - objects once in contact continue to influence each other at a distance. Like her body, her script was small and precise and elegant. One of the students in the front row muttered discontentedly to her benchmate: "What does she think we are, morons? They knew that much back in the Kaunian Empire." Pekka nodded. "Yes, they did know the two laws back in the days of the Empire. Our own ancestors" - like her, the student was of Kuusaman blood - "knew them before the Kaunians crossed the Strait of Valmiera and came to our island. The ancestors of the Gyongyosians discovered them independently. Some of the savages in the distant jungles of equa- tonal Slaulia and on the island of the Great North Sea know them, too. Even the shaggy Ice People know them, though they may have learned them from us or from the folk of Derlaval." The student looked as if she wished she'd never opened her mouth. In her place, Pekka would have wished the same thing. But wishes had no place in theoretical sorcery. Pekka resumed: "What we have here is qualitative, not quantitative. The laws of d- in may art, ugh, out efore were r the here - ~ i es. A Igava; d yel- ough part of f their 52 Harry Turtledove I similarity and contagion state that these effects occur, but not how they occur or to what d~qree they occur. That is what we shall be contemplat- ing during the rest of the term. She covered the sheet of slate with symbols and numbers a couple of times before the lecture ended, pausing to use an old wool rag to wipe it clean before cluttering it once more. When she dismissed the students, one of them came up to her, bowed, and asked, "Mistress Pekka, could you not have cleansed the slate by magecraft instead of bothering with that rag?" "A mage with a stronger practical bent than mine would have had an easier time of it, but yes, I could have done that." Pekka hid most of her amusement; she got this sort of question about every other term. She could see the followup gleaming in the young man's eyes, and forestalled it: "I use the rag instead of magic because using the rag is easier than any magic I could make. One thing a mage must learn is, that he can do some- thing does not necessarily mean he should do it." He stared at her, his eyes as wide as a Kuusaman's could be, nothing but incomprehension on his face. "What's the point of magic, if not doing things'," he asked. "Knowing what things to do?" Pekka suggested gently. No, the student did not understand; she could see as much. Perhaps he would begin to by the end of the term. Perhaps not, too, He was very young. And, being a man, he was likelier to think of limits as things to be over- come than to be respected. He went off shaking his head. Pekka permitted herself a small smile. She dealt with a couple of other questions of smaller import, though ones more immediately urgent to the students asking them: matters of text and examinations. And then, as a new group of chattering young men and women began corming into the auditorium for the lecture on crystal- lography that followed hers, Pekka neatly tucked her notes into a small leather valise and left the hall. The sun had come out while she was speaking, and puddles from the previous night's rain sparkled, sometimes dazzlingly. Even in summer, though, the sunlight had a watery quality to it. Kuusamo was a land of mists and fogs and dnizzles, a land where the sky went from gray to gray- ish blue and back again, a land where the rich and brilliant greens of forest and meadow and hillside had to make up for the drabness overhead. INTo THE DARKNESS 53 And they did. So everyone in Kuusamo proudly boasted. Pekka was no different from her countrymen in that. But, four or five years before - no, it had to be five, because the war with Gyongyos hadn't started - she'd taken a holiday on the famous golden beaches of northern Jelgava. Her skin, not far from golden itself, withstood the fierce sun better than the pale hides of the Jelgavans who toasted themselves on the sand. That was one of the memories she'd brought home to KaJaam. Another - and she could still call it up whenever she chose, as if she lay naked on the beach again - was the astonishing color of the sky. Passages of Kaunian poetry that had been obscure suddenly took on new meaning for her. Here, though, such colors, such heat, were only memories. Kajaani, on the southern coast of Kuusamo, looked out across the Narrow Sea southeast toward the land of the Ice People and straight south toward the endless ice floes at the bottom of the world. Pekka straightened her slim shoulders. She enjoyed remembering Jelgava. She would not have wanted to live there. KaJ'aani was home. That mattered very much to a Kuusaman. Picking her way around the puddles, Pekka really noticed the buildings that more often just formed the backdrop before which she played out her life. Most of them were wooden: Kuusamo was a land of wide forests. Some of the timber was stained, some pale with weathering. Very little was painted, not on the outside; gaudy display was alien to her people. The handful of bn'ck buildings harmonized with the rest. They were brown or yellow-brown or tan - no reds or oranges to jar the eyes. "No," she said softly, but with no less pride than that, "we are no branch from the Algarvic stem, nor the Kaunian, either. Let them swag- ger and preen. We endure." She hardly knew when she left the college grounds and went into Kajaam itself The people on the streets here were a little older, a little more sober looking. The Lagoans and men from the Kaunian countries who leavened the mix were more apt to be sailors than students. Shops showed their wares, but the shopkeepers didn't rush out, grab her by the arm, and try to drag her inside, as happened in Jelgava. That would have been gaudy display, too. A public caravan hummed by her, the wind of its passage ruffling the rainwater in the gutters. The two coaches were also of wood, with their roofs overhanging the windows to either side to ward against the 54 Harry Turtledove weather. In Lagoas or Sibiu, they would have been metal. In Valmiera or Jelgava, they would have been painted to look like marble, whatever they were made of. Pekka paid a couple of coppers for a news sheet and walked along reading it. She made a clucking noise of dismay when she saw that the Gongs had thrown back the fleet trying to retake Obuda. Admiral Risto was quoted as saying, "They had more dragons up their sleeve than we expected. We'll regroup and have another go at them sometime later." Swemmel of Unkerlant would have had Risto's head for a failure like that. The Naval Ministry issued a statement over the signature of the Seven Princes expressing full confidence in the adrmiral. Lopping off heads was not the Kuusaman style. Pekka wondered, just for a moment, whether the war would have gone better if it had been. In the war on the mainland of Derlavai, Valmiera and Jelgava and Forthweg all claimed smashing victories over the Algarvians. Algarve reported smashing victories over her foes, too. Somebody was lying. Pekka smiled wryly. Maybe everybody was lying. She walked up into the hills that rose swiftly from the gray, boorming sea. Gulls wheeled screeching, high overhead. Ajay in a pine sapling screeched, too, on a different note. A bright yellow brimstone butterfly fluttered past. This time, genuine pleasure filled Pekka's sn-ffle. Butterflies had only a brief stretch of summer to be on the wing, down here in KaJaami. Pekka turned off the road and down a narrower one. Her sister and brother-in-law dwelt next door to her, in a weathered wooden house with tall pines behind. Elimaki opened the door when she saw Pekka coming up the walk. Pekka's son dodged past her and ran to his mother with a shout of glee. She stooped down and took him in her arms. "Were you good for Aunt Elimaki, Uto?" she demanded, doing her imperfect best to sound severe. Uto nodded with grave four-year-old sincerity. Elimaki rolled her eyes, which surprised Pekka not at all. Pekka took the egg of terror disguised as a small boy by the hand and led him to their own home, making sure he did nothing too drastic along the way. When she went inside, she said, "Try to keep the house halfway clean until your father comes home from the college." Leino, her hus- band, was also a mage. This term, his last lecture came several hours later than hers. INTo THE DAKKNESS 55 Uto promised. He always promised. A four-year-old's oaths were written on the wind. Pekka knew it. She took a duck from the rest crate. The Kaunians had developed that spell, and used it for paralyzing their foes - till both they and their neighbors found countermeasures for it. After that, it lay almost forgotten for centuries until, with greater under- standing of exactly how it worked, modem researchers began applying it both to medicine and to preserving food. In the rest box, the plucked and gutted duck would have stayed fresh for many weeks. Glazed with cranberry Jam, it had just gone into the oven when some- thing fell over with a crash. Pekka shut the oven door, splashed water on her hands, and hurried off to see what sort of atrocity Uto had committed this time. ka er her and Garivald was weeding - exactly what he was supposed to be doing - when King Swernmel's inspectors paid his village a visit. The inspectors wore rock-gray tunics, as if they were Unkerlanter soldiers, and strode along as if they were kings themselves. Garivald knew what he thought of that, but letting them know wouldn't have been efficient. Very much the reverse, in fact. One of the inspectors was tall, the other short. But for that, they might have been stamped from the same mold. "You!" the tall one called to Garivald. "What's the harvest going to look like here?" "Still a little too early to tell, sir," Garivald answered, as any man with an ounce - half an ounce - of sense would have done. Rain as the barley and rye were being gathered would be a disaster. It would be an even worse disaster than it might have otherwise, because the inspectors and their minions would cart off Swernmel's share no matter what, leaving the village to get by on the remainder, if there was any. "Still a little too early to tell," the short one repeated. His accent said he came night out of Cottbus, the capital. In Ganivald's ears, it was harsh and choppy, well suited to its arrogant possessor. Southerners weren't in such a big hurry when they opened their mouths. By talking slower, they made asses of themselves less often, too - or so they said when their over- lords weren't around to hear. "If this whole Duchy of Grelz were more efficient all the way around, we'd be better off," the tall one said. If Swernmel's men, and Kyot's, hadn't burned about every third i 56 Harry Turtledove village in the Duchy of Grelz back around the time Gartivald was born, Unkerlant would have been better off. Being efficient was hard without a roof over your head in a southern winter. It was even harder with your fields trampled and your livestock stolen or killed. Even now, a genera- tion later, the effects lingered. The short inspector glared at Ganivald, who had stayed on his knees and so was easy to look down on. "Don't think you can cheat us by lying about how much you bring in, either," he snapped. "We have ways of knowing. We have ways of making cheaters sorry, too." Garivald had to answer that. "I am only one farmer in this village, sir," he said, genuine alarm in his voice now. He knew Villages had vanished off the face of the earth after trying to hold out on Cottbus: that was the excuse King Swernmel's men used once the dirty work was done, any- how. He went on, "I have no way of knowing how much the whole village will bring in. The only one who could even guess would b e Waddo, the firstman. " He'd never liked Waddo, and didn't care what the-, inspectors did to him. They both laughed, nastily. "Oh, he knows what we can do," the tall one said. "Never fret yourself about that. But we want to make sure everyone else knows, too. That's efficient, that is." He folded his arms across his chest. "Everybody needs to know King Swernmel's will, not just that ugly lump of a Waddo." "Aye, sir," Ganivald said, more warmly than he'd expected. If Swernmel's inspectors could see that Waddo was an ugly lump, maybe they weren't asses after all. No. That, surely, gave them too much credit. Maybe they weren't such dreadful asses after all. "A lot of men in this village," the short one remarked. "A lot of young men in this village." He jotted a note, then asked Garivald, "When did the impressers last visit here?" "Sir, I don't really recall, I'm afraid." The peasant plucked a weed from the ground with altogether unnecessary violence. "Inefficient." The inspectors spoke together. Garivald didn't kno~v whether they meant him or the impressers or both at once. He hoped the village wouldn't have to try to bring in the harvest with half the young men dragged into the army to go off and fight Gyongyos. He hoped even more that he wouldn't be one of those young men. "Does this powersforsaken place boast a crystal?" the tall inspector At be dit. ng did om ow the Ling even ctor INTo THE DARKNESS 57 asked. "I didn't see one in your firstman's shack." Waddo owned the finest house in the village. Ganivald wished his own were half so large. Waddo had even added on half a second story to give some of his children rooms of their own. Everyone thought that a citi- fied luxury - everyone but the inspector, evidently. Ganivald answered, "Sir, we don't. We're a long way from the closest ley line, and-' 'We know that," the short inspector broke in. "I'm so saddle-sore, I can hardly walk." He rubbed at his left buttock. And we like itjustfine, Garivald thought. That was one reason impressers and inspectors didn't come round very often. Nobody hereabouts rmissed them. Nobody hereabouts missed anyone from Cottbus. In the olden days, the Duchy of Grelz - the Kingdom of Grelz, it had been then, till the Union of Thrones - had been the most important part of Unkerlant. Now the men from the hot, dusty north lorded it over their southern cousins. As far as Gan'vald was concerned, they could go away and never come back. Bandits , that's what they were, nothing but bandits. He wondered if they were efficient bandits. If they happened to suffer unfortunate accidents, would anyone track them down and take the kind of revenge for which Swernmel had become all too famous? His shoulders worked in a large shrug. He didn't think the chance worth tak- ing, worse luck. Odds were no one else in the village would, either. The inspectors went off to inflict themselves on someone else. As Garivald kept on pulling weeds, he imagined their stems were the inspec- tors' necks. That sent him back to the village at the close of day in a better mood than he would have thought possible while the inspectors raked him over the coals. He never thought to wonder what the place looked like to the men from the capital. To him, it was simply home: three or four lines of wooden houses with thatched roofs, and a blacksmith's shop and a couple of taverns among them. Chickens roamed the dirt streets, pecking at whatever they could find. A sow in a muddy wallow between two houses looked out at Garivald and grunted. Dogs and children roamed the streets, too, sometimes chasing chickens, sometimes one another. He swatted at a fly that landed on the back of his neck. A moment later, another one bit him in the arm. In winter, the flies died. In winter, though, the livestock would stay in the house with him and his family. That kept the beasts warm, and helped 58 Harry Turtledove keep him and his wife and his boy and baby girl warm, too. Winters in Grelz were not for the fainthearted. Annore was chopping up parsnips and rhubarb and throwing them into a stewpot full of barley and groats when he came into the house. "I'll put in the blood sausages in a little while," she said. When she sriffled, he still saw some of the pert good looks that had drawn him to her half a dozen years before. Most of the time, though, she just looked tired. Gari'vald understood that; he was bone-weary himself "Any beer left in the bucket?" he asked. "Plenty." Annore tapped it with her sandal. "Dip me up a mug, too, will you?" When her husband did, she murmured a word of thanks. Then she said, "People say the inspectors were buzzing around you out in the fields." The words came out with the usual mixture of hate and fear - and, as usual, fear predominated. But Ganivald shrugged his broad shoulders. "It wasn't too bad. They were being efficient" - he laced the catchword with scorn - 11 so they didn't spend too much of their precious time on me." He raised his wooden mug of beer to his lips and took a long pull. After wiping his upper lip on his sleeve, he went on, "The one bad part was when they asked if the impressers had been through this part of the Duchy any time latcly. " "What did you tell them?" Annore asked. Yes, fear predominated. He shrugged again. "Told 'em I didn't know. They can't prove 11 in lying, so that looked like the efficient thing to do." Now he laughed at King Swemmel's favorite term - but softly, lest anyone but his wife hear. Slowly, Annore nodded. "I don't see any better choices," she said. "But not all inspectors are fools, even if they are bastards. They're liable to figure out that I don't know means haven't seen 'emfor years. If they do ... If they did, sergeants would teach a lot of young men from the village the arcane mysteries of marching and countermarching. Garivald knew he was liable - no, likely - to be one of them. He'd been too young the last time the impressers came through. He wouldn't be too young now. They'd give him a stick and tell him to blaze away for the glory of King Swemmel, which mattered to him not in the least. The Gyongyosians had sticks, too, and were in the habit of blazing back. He didn't want to g go to the edge of the world to fight them. He didn't want to go any- where. All he wanted was to stay with his family and bring in the harvest. INTo THE DARKNESS 59 His daughter Leuba woke up and started to cry. Annore scooped her out of the cradle, then slid an arm out of her tunic, bared a breast, and put the baby on it. "You'll have to chop the sausage," she said above Leuba's avid gulping noises. "All night," Garivald replied, and he did. He almost chopped off his finger a couple of times, too, because he paid as much attention to his wife's breast as to what he was supposed to be doing. Annore noticed, and stuck out her tongue at him. They both laughed. Leuba tried to laugh, too, but didn't want to stop nursing while she did it. She coughed and choked and sprayed milk out her nose. When the smell of the vegetables and blood sausage made his stomach growl more fiercely than any inspector from Cottbus, Ganivald went to the door and shouted for his son Syrivald to come in and eat supper. Syrivald came. He was covered in mud and dirt, and all the more cheer- ful because of it, as any five-year-old boy would have been. I could eat a bear," he announced. "We haven't got a bear," Annore told him. "You'll eat what we give you." And so Synivald did, from a child-sized wooden bowl, a smaller copy of the one from which his parents spooned up supper. Annore gave Leuba little bits of barley and groats and sausage on the top of her spoon. The baby was just learning to eat things that weren't milk, and seemed intent on trying to get as messy as her big brother. The sun went down about the time they finished supper. Annore did a little cleaning up by the light of a lamp that smelled of the lard it burned. Synivald started yawning. He lay down on a bench against the wall and went to sleep. Annore nursed Leuba once more, then laid her in the cradle. Before his wife could set her tunic to rights, Ganivald cupped in his hand the breast at which the baby had been feeding. "Don't you think of anything else?" Annore asked. "What should I think of, the impressers?" Garivald retorted. "This is better." He drew her to him. Presently, it was a great deal better. By the moans she tried to muffle, Annore thought so, too. She fell asleep very quickly. Ganivald stayed awake longer. He did think of the impressers, whether he wanted to or not. Bcnibo had never seen so many stars in the sky above Tricarico. But, as the constable paced through the dark streets of his home town, he did not watch the heavens for the sake of diamonds and the occasional sapphire or ruby strewn across black velvet. He kept a wary eye peeled for the swift-moving shapes ofJelgavan dragons blotting out those jewels. Tnicanico lay not far below the foothills of the Bradano Mountains, whose peaks formed the border between Algarve and Jelgava. Every so often, Bembo could spy flashes of light - momentary stars - in the moun- tains on the eastern horizon: the soldiers of his kingdom and the Jelgavans blazing away at one another. The Jelgavans, so far, had not pushed their way through the foothills and down on to the southern Algarvian plain. Bembo was glad of that; he'd expected worse. He'd also expected the Jelgavans to send more dragons over Tnicanico than they had. He'd been a boy during the Six Years' War, and vividly remembered the terror dropped eggs had spawned. There hadn't been so many then, but even a few were plenty and to spare. Jelgava's dragon farms had bee anything but idle since. A caravan hurnmed slowly past, sliding a couple of feet above the ground along its ley line. The lamps at the front of the coach had dark cloth wrapped around them so they gave out only a little light: with luck, too little to be spotted by Jelgavan dragonfliers high in the air. The caravan steersman doffed his plumed hat to Bembo. Bembo swept off his own to return the compliment. He smiled a little as he set the hat back on his head. Even in wartime, the courtesies that made Algarvian life endured. When he rounded a corner, the smile disappeared. A wineshop was not so securely shuttered as it might have been; light spilled out through INTo THE DARKNESS 61 the slats to puddle on the pavement. Bembo took the club off his belt and whacked the door with it. "Close up in there!" he called. A moment later, after a couple of startled exclamations, the shutters creaked as some- one adjusted them. The betraying light disappeared. Nodding in satisfac- tion, Bembo walked on. A Kaunian column of pale marble gleamed even by starlight. In ancient days, Tricarico, like a lot of northern Algarve, had belonged to the Kaunian Empire. Monuments lingered. So did occasional heads of blond hair among the red- and auburn- and sandy-haired majority. Bembo would just as soon have shipped blonds and monuments alike over the Bradano Mountains. The Jelgavans thought they gave a king- dom of Kaunian blood a claim to what Kaunians had once ruled. A woman leaned against the column. Her legs gleamed like its marble; her kilt was very short, scarcely covering the swell of her buttocks. "Hello, sweetheart," she called, peering toward Bembo as he approached. "Feel like a good time tonight?" "Hello, Fiametta," the constable said, lifting his hat. "Go peddle it somewhere else, or I'll have to notice you're here." Fiametta cursed in disgust. "All this dark is terrible for business," she complained. "The men can't find me-" "Oh, I bet they can," he said. He'd let her bribe him with her body a time or two, in the easy-going days before the war. She snorted. "And when somebody does find me, who is it? A con- stable! Even if you want me, you won't pay for it." "Not with money," Bembo allowed, "but you're out here on the job, not sitting in Reform sewing tunics or something." "Reform would pay me better than this - and I'd meet more interest- ing people, too," Fiametta came over and kissed Bembo on the end of his long, straight nose. Then she flounced off, putting everything she had into it, and she had quite a lot. Over her shoulder, she called, "See? I'm going somewhere else." Somewhere else was probably no farther than the other side of the column, but Bembo didn't follow her. She'd done what he'd told her, after all. One of these days, he might feel like telling her to do something different again. He turned on to a side street, one with houses and apartment houses on it, not shops and offices. Once or twice every block, he had to rap on 62 Harry Turtledove a window sill or a doorway and shout for people to let lamps die or cover their windows better. Everyone in Tricarico surely knew the new regulations, but every Algarvian was born thinking regulations applied to the other fellow, not to him. A rotund man, Bembo fumed when he had to trudge up to the fourth floor of an apartment house to get some fool to draw his curtains. When he came out of the apartment house, someone disappeared down the dark street with remarkable haste. Bembo thought about run- ning after the footpad or whatever he was, but not for long. With his belly, he wouldn't have had a prayer of catching him. He came up to another house with a hand's breadth of open space between the edges of the curtains. He raised his club to whack the sill, then froze, as if suddenly turned to stone. Inside, a pretty young woman was getting out of her clothes and into a loose kilt and tunic for the night. Bembo had never felt so torn. As a man, he wanted to say nothing and keep watching: the more he saw of her, the better she looked. As a con- stable, though, he had his duty. He waited till she was sliding the night tunic down over herself before he rapped the wall and called, "Darken this house!" The womanjumped and squeaked. The lamp died. Bembo strode on. Duty had triumphed - and he'd had a good peek. He used the club several more times - though never so entertainingly - before emerging on to the Avenue 'of Duchess Matalista, a broad street full of fancy shops, barristers' offices, and the sort of dining establishments the nobility and rich commoners patronized. When he saw light leaking from places like those, he had to be more polite with his warnings. If a baron or a well-connected restaurateur complained about him, he'd end up on permanctit iiight duty M the nasty part of town. He had just asked - asked! it graveled a proud man - a jeweler to close his curtains tighter when a hiss in the air made him look up. He saw mov- ing shadows against the stars. Before he could fill his lungs to shout, the egg he'd heard falling burst a couple of hundred yards behind him. Others crashed down all around Trican'co. Bursts of light as their protective shells smashed sent shadows leaping crazily and chopped motion into herky-Jerky bits. The bursts were shatteringly loud. Bembo clutched at his ears. Blasts of suddenly released energies knocked him off his feet. The pavement tore his bare kiices. INTo THE DARKNESS 63 Howling with pain, he scrambled up again and ran toward the nearest burst. The egg had come to earth on the Avenue of Duchess Matalista in front of an eatery where a supper for two cost about a week of Bembo's pay. It had blown a hole in the cobblestones and had blown in the front of the restaurant; he didn't know how the roof was staying up. The egg had also blown in the front of the milliner's shop across the street, but Bembo didn't worry about that: the milliner's was closed and empty. Screaming, bleeding people came staggering out of the restaurant. A woman got down on her hands and knees and vomited an expensive rneal into the gutter. Fire was beginning to lick at the exposed roof timbers. Careless of that, Bembo dashed into the restaurant to help whoever hadn't managed to escape. Shards of glass crunched under his boots. That glass had been almost as deadly as the raw energy of the egg itself. The first person the flickering flames showed him had had his head almost sliced from his body by a great chunk that still glittered beside the corpse. Someone farther in groaned. Bembo yanked up the table that pinned an old woman, stooped, got her arm around his shoulder, and half- dragged, half carried her out to the street. "You!" he snapped to the woman who'd thrown up. "Bandage this cut on her leg.." "With what?" she asked. "Your kerchief, if you've got one. Your scarf there. Or cut cloth off her tunic or yours - you'll have a paring knife in your bag there, won't you?" Bembo turned to a couple of men who didn't look too badly hurt. "You and you - in there with me. She's not the only one left inside." "What if the roof caves in?" one man asked. "What if an egg falls on us?" the other added. More eggs were falling. Sticks bigger and heavier than a man could carry had been set up along some of Tricarico's ley lines. They blazed spears of light up into the sky at the jelgavan dragons, but there weren't enough of them, not nearly enough. That didn't matter, not to Bembo. "We'll be very unhappy," he answered. "Now come on, or I curse you for cowards." "If you weren't a constable and immune, I'd call you out for that,' growled the fellow who'd fretted about eggs. "If you'd come without arguing, I wouldn't have had to say it," Bembo returned, and plunged back into the eatery without waiting to see 64 Harry Turtledove whether the two men would follow. They did; he heard them kicking through the broken glass that covered the floor. They worked manfully, once they got down to it. They and Bembo dragged out customers and servitors and, from the kitchens, a couple of cooks. As the flames began to take hold and the smoke got thicker, Bembo had to make his last trip out crawling and dragging a man after him. He couldn't breathe if he stood upright. He could hardly breathe while he crawled; his lungs felt scorched and filled with soot. The glass sliced the palms of his hands. A horse-drawn pumper clattered up and began pouring water on the flames. Hacking and spitting up lumps of thick black phlegm, Bembo wished the crew could turn the hoses on the inside of his chest. They were fighting a losing battle here; the eatery was going to bum. Before long, the crew realized as much. They began playing water on the buildings to either side, neither of which had yet caught fire. Maybe they wouldn't, now. Even if they didn't, though, the water would damage whatever they held. "I thank you, sir," the old woman Bembo had first rescued said from the sidewalk. He reached for his hat, only to discover he wasn't wearing it. It had to be back in the eatery, which meant it was gone for good. Bembo instead, he said, "Milady, it was my duty and" - another coughing spasm cut off his words - "my duty and my honor." "That's well said." The old woman - a noble, by her manners - inclined her head to Bembo. He bowed again. "Milady, liust hope we're giving thejelgavans worse than we're getting. The news sheets say we are. Every braggart blabbing out of a crystal says we are, but how do we know? The jelgavans' news sheets are bound to be telling them they're beating the stuffing out of us." "How long have you been a constable, young fellow?" the woman asked, a hint of amusement in her voice. Bembo wondered what was funny. "Almost ten years, milady." The old woman nodded. "That appears to be enough to have left you a profoundly cynical man." "Thank you," he said. She laughed out loud. For the life of him, he couldn't figure out why. INTo THE DARKNESS With the dawn, Talsu peered down from the Bratarm Mountains into Algarve. Smoke rose from the burning town of Tricarico. He smiled. His officers had assured him that jelgava was doing far more damage to Algarve than the cowardly Algarvian air pirates were inflicting on his own kingdom. His officers had also assured him that soon, very soon, jelgava's ever- victorious forces would sweep out of the mountains and across the plains of Algarve. The jelgavan army had visited fire and devastation on those plains in the last months of the Six Years' War. He saw no reason why jelgava should not do the same thing again. He saw no reason why jelgava should not already have done it again, in fact. All of Algarve's neighbors hated her. All of them that mattered were at war against her. They were many. She was one, and beset from east and west and south. Why, then, were his countrymen not yet out of the mountains and racing to Join hands with the Forthwegians? He scratched at his almost invisibly pale mustache, which he wore close- trimmed, not in any wild Algarvian style. It was a puzzlement. A delicious smell distracted him. Turning his head, he saw Colonel Dzirnavu's servant carrying a covered silver tray toward the regimental commander's tent. "Ha, Vartu, what have you got there?" he asked. "His lordship's breakfast - what else?" the servant answered. Talsu made an exasperated noise. "I didn't think it was the chamber pot," he said. "What I meant was, what will the illustrious count enjoy for his breakfast?" "Not much, if I'm anyjudge," Vartu said, rolling his eyes. "But if you mean, Mat is he havingfor breakfast? - I've got fresh-baked blueberry tarts here, and poached eggs and bacon on toasted bread with butter sauce poured over them, and some nice ripe cheese, and a muskmelon from by the seashore. And in the pot - not a chamber pot, mind you - is tea flavored with bergamot leaves." "Stop!" Talsu held up a hand. "You're breaking my heart." His belly rumbled. "You're breaking my stomach, too," he added. "See what you rruiss because the blood in your veins isn't blue enough?" Vartu said. "Red blood's good enough to spill for our dear jelgava, so it is, but it won't get you a breakfast like this at the front, no indeed. And now I've got to get moving. If the hot stuff gets cold or the cold stuff warms up, the other thing his lordship will bite off is my head." 66 Harry Turtledove Neither soldier had spoken loudly; the colonel's tent lay only fifteen or twenty feet away. Vartu ducked inside. "Curse you, what took you so long?" Dzirnavu shouted. "Are you trying to starve me to death?" "I humbly crave pardon, your lordship," Vartu answered, abject as a servant had to be in the face of a noble's wrath. Talsu jammed his own face against the brownish green sleeve of his uniform tunic so no one would hear him giggle. Dzirnavu was as round as a kickball. He looked as if he'd take years without food to starve to death. With the regimental commander's breakfast attended to, the cooks could get around to feeding the rest of the soldiers. Talsu lined up with the other men in tunics and trousers of the same horse-dung color as his. When he finally got up to the kettles, he held out a tin plate and a wooden cup. One bored-looking cook plopped a ladleful of barley mush and a length of grayish sausage on the plate. Another poured sour beer into the cup. "My favorites," Talsu said: "dead man's cock and what he pissed through it." "Listen to the funny man," said one of the cooks, who'd probably heard the stale joke two or three times already. "Get out of here, funny man, before you end up wearing this pot." "Your sweetheart's the one who knows about dead man's cock," the other cook put in. "Your wife, you mean." Laughing, Talsu sat down on a rock, took the knife from his belt, and cut off a bite-sized chunk of sausage. It was greasy, and would have been flavorless except that it was heading toward stale. Along with the porridge, it filled his belly. That was the most he would say for it. He wondered if Colonel Dzirnavu had ever tasted what his men ate. He doubted it. If Dzirnavu tasted sausage like that, the Algarvians in Tricarico would hear him screaming. Presently, the regimental commander deigned to emerge from the tent. With green-brown tunic and trousers stretched tight to cover his globular frame, with bejeweled medallions of nobility glittering on his chest, with rank badges shining from his shoulder straps, he resembled nothing so much as a heroic coconut. "My men!" he said, and the sag- ging flesh under his chin wobbled. "My men, you have not advanced far enough or fast enough to satisfy our most magnificent sovereign, his Radiant Splendor, King Donalitu V. Press ahead more bravely hence- forward, that he may be more pleased with you. INTo THE DARKNESS 67 One of Talsu's friends, a tall, skinny chap named Smidsu, murmured, "You don't suppose it's ever crossed the king's mind that one of the reasons we haven't gone farther and faster is that we've got Colonel Dzimavu commanding, do you?" "He's Count Dzirnavu, too, so what can you do?" Talsu answered. "The only thing that would happen if we moved fast against the Algarvians; is that we'd leave him behind." He paused for a moment. "Might be the best thing that could happen to the regiment." Smilsu snickered, hard enough to draw a glare from a sergeant. Talsu loathed sergeants and pitied them at the same time. They made them- selves as hateful as possible to the men of their own estate under them, knowing all the while that the officers above them despised them for their low birth, and that, however heroically they might serve, they could not hope to become officers themselves. Colonel Dzimavu, perhaps exhausted at having addressed his soldiers, retreated behind canvas once more. Smilsu said, "You notice the king is displeased with us, not even with us and the colonel?" "So it goes," Talsu said resignedly. "When we win the war, though, he'll be pleased with the colonel and then, if he happens to recollect, with us, too." From inside the tent, Dzirnavu let out a bellow. Vartu hurried in to see what his master required. Then he hurried out again. When he returned, he was carrying a small, square bottle of dark green glass. "What have you got there?" Talsu asked. He knew the answer, but wanted to see what Dzimavu's servant would say. Sure enough, Vartu had a word for it: "Restorative. Talsu laughed. "Make sure he's good and restored, then. If he's back here snoring while the rest of us fight the Algarvians up ahead, we'll all be better off." "No, no, no." Smilsu shook his head. "Just restore him enough to get him fighting mad, Vartu. I want to see him go char ing between the 91 rocks, straight at the Algarvians. They'll run like rabbits - like little fluffy bunnies they'll run. They won't have figured we'd be able to bring a behemoth through the mountains." Vartu snickered. He almost dropped the dark green bottle, and had to make a desperate lunge for it. Fortunately for him, he caught it. Unfortunately for him, Colonel Dzirnavu chose that moment to bellow 68 Harry Turtledove - "Corif I ing out again: ound it, Vartu, you worthless turd, what are you doi there, fiddling with yourselP" "If you were fiddling with yourself, you'd be having more fun than you are now," Talsu told the servant. With a sigh, Vartu went off to deliver the therapeutic dose to his master. "If he liked the illustrious count better, we couldn't talk to him the way we do," Smilsu said. "If he liked the illustrious count better, we'd probably like the illustri- ous count better, too, and we wouldn't have to talk to him the way we do," Talsu said. His friend chewed on that, then slowly nodded. "Some nobles do make good officers," Sniilsu adrmitted. "If they didn't, we never would have won the Six Years' War, I don't suppose." "I don't know about that," Talsu said. "I don't know about that at all. The Algarvians have noble officers, too." "Heh." Smilsu shook a fist at Talsu. "Now look what you've gone and done, you lousy traitor." "What are you talking about?" Talsu demanded. "You've made me feel sorry for the stinking enemy, that's what." Smilsu paused, as if considering. "Not too sorry to blaze away at him and put him out of his misery, I guess. Maybe I won't have to report you after all." Talsu started to say it would be softer back of the front than at it, but held his tongue. The dungeon cell waiting for anyone reported as a traitor would make the front feel like a palace. Worse things would happen to a traitor back there than to a soldier at the front, too. By midafternoon, the regiment had taken possession of a little valley, in which nestled a village whose Algarvian inhabitants had fled, taking their sheep and goats and mules with them. Colonel Dzirnavu. promptly established himself in the largest and most impressive house there. His men, meanwhile, fanned out through the valley to make sure the Algarvians had not yielded it to set up an ambush. Talsu looked up at the higher ground to either side of the valley. "Hope they haven't got an egg-' tosser or two stashed away up there," he remarked. "That sort of thing could ruin a night's sleep." "That's not in our orders," one of his comrades said. "Getting myself killed for no good reason isn't in my orders, either," Talsu retorted. INTo THE DARKNESS 69 In the end, a couple of platoons did sweep the mountainside. Talsu made sure he got part of that duty, thinking, ff you want something done tigh t, do it yourse!f But he soon discovered even the whole regiment couldn't have done the job right, not without working on it for a week. Near the valley floor, the mountainsides were covered with scrubby bushes. He might have walked past an Algarvian company and never known it. Farther up, tumbled rocks offered concealment almost equally good. The sweep found no one, but none of the Jelgavans - save possibly their captain, a pompous marquis - had any illusions about what that proved. When Talsu got back to the village, he set out his bedroll as far from the handful of buildings as he could. He noted that Smilsu was doing the same thing not far away. The two men shared a wry look, shook their heads, and went on about the business of getting ready for the night. Talsu woke up at every small noise, grabbing for his stick. No soldier who wanted to live to get old could afford to be a heavy sleeper. But he did not wake for the egg flying past till it slammed into the fanning village. Three more followed in quick succession: not big, heavy, immensely potent ones, but the sort a crew might hurl with a light tosser a couple of men could break out and carry in and out with them on their backs. They knocked down three houses and set several others afire. Talsu and his company went out into the fields to keep the Algarvians from get- ting close enough to blaze at their comrades, who labored to rescue the men trapped in the building the egg had wrecked. Looking back, Talsu saw the house Colonel Dzirnavu had taken as his own now burning mer- fily. He wondered whether or not he should hope the illustrious colonel had escaped. Leofslg trudged east along a dirt road in northern Algarve, in the direc- tion of the town of Gozzo. That was what his officers said, at any rate, and he was wining to take their word for it. The countryside looked much as it did back in Forthweg: ripening wheatfields, groves of almonds and olives and oranges and limes, villages full of houses built from white- washed sun-dried brick with red tile roofs. But the stench of war was in his nostrils, as it had not been around Gromheort. Smoke blew in little thin wisps, like dying fog: some of the wheatfields behind him were no longer worth admiring. And dead horses 70 Harry Turtledove and cows and unicorns lay bloating by the roadside and scattered through the fields, adding their sickly-sweet reek to the sour sharpness of the smoke. Forthwegians and Algarvians lay bloating in the fields and by the roadside, too. Leofsig did his best not to think about that. When he'd found himself included in King Penda's levy, he'd been proud, eager, to serve the king and the kingdom. Ealstan, his little brother, had been sick with jealousy at being too young to go off and smash the Algarvians himself Having seen what went into smashing a foe - and how the foe could smash back - Leofsig would have been just as well pleased to return to Gromheort and help his father cast accounts the rest of his days. What would please a soldier and what he got were not one and the same. A trooper mounted on a brown-painted unicorn came trotting back~l toward the column of which Leofsig was a tiny part. He pointed over his shoulder, gesturing and shouting something Leofsig couldn't understand. The gestures were plain enough, though. Turning to the soldier on his left, Leofsig said, "Looks like the Algarvians are going to try to hold us in front of Gozzo." "Aye, so it does," answered his squadmate, whose name was Beocca. Leofsig envied him his fine, thick beard. His own still had almost hairless patches on his cheeks and under his lower lip. When Beocca scratched his chin, as he did now, the hairs rustled under his fingers. "We've pushed lem back before - otherwise, we wouldn't be here. We can do it again." Before long, officers started shouting orders. The column deployed into skirrnish lines. Along with his comrades, Leofsig tramped through the fields instead of between them. The grain went down under the feet of thousands of men almost as if cut by a reaper. "One way or another, we'll make the redheads go hungry," Beocca said, stamping down the ripening grain with great relish. Leofsig, sweat- ing in the hot sun, hadn't the energy to stamp. He just nodded and kept marching. More shouts produced lanes between blocks of men. Unicorn and horse cavalry trotted forward to screen the footsoldiers who would do the bulk of the fighting. Forthwegian dragons flew overhead, some so high as to be only specks, others low enough to let Leofsig hear their shrill scrceches. ck in his d. his cca eat- kept INTo THE DARKNESS "I hope they drop plenty of eggs on Gozzo," Beocca said. 71 "I hope they keep the Algarvians from dropping eggs on us," Leofsig added. After a moment, Beocca grunted agreement. As the Forthwegians drew nearer to Gozzo, Leofslg kept cocking his head and looking up into the sky every so often. Even so, he was cautiously skirting a hedgerow when the Algarvian dragons came racing out of the east to challenge those of his kingdom. The first he knew of the battle overhead was when a dragon fell out of the sky and smashed to earth a hundred yards or so in front of him. The great beast writhed in its death agony, throwing now its silvered belly, now its back - painted Forthwegian blue and white - uppermost. Its flier lay motionless, a small, crumpled heap, a few feet away. Flame spurted from the dragon's jaw, cremating the man who had taken it into action. Leofsig looked up again: looked up and gasped in horror. He had seen very few Algarvian dragons till now. That had led him to believe the enemy had very few, or very few they could commit against the Forthwegians, at any rate. Since they were also fighting Jelgava and Valmiera and Sibiu, that made sense to him. It might have made sense, but it proved untrue. Suddenly, two or three times the Forthwegians' numbers beset them. Dragons tumbled to earth, burned or even clawed by their foes. Most were marked in blue and white, not Algarvian green, red, and white. Other dragons, their fliers killed by an enemy's stick, either flew off at random or, mad with battle, struck out at friends and foes alike. In what seemed the twinkling of an eye, the Forthwegian dragon- swarm was shattered. The remnant not sent spinning to their doom or flying wild without a man to guide them fled back toward Forthweg. They might fight another day. Against overwhelming odds, they would not fight above this field. Inside half an hour, Algarve, not Forthweg, ruled the skies. Beocca made a rumbling noise, deep in his throat. "Now we're in for it," he said. Leofslg could only nod. The same thought, in the same words, had gone through his mind, too. Most of the dragons that had driven off the Forthwegian swarm had flown without eggs, making them faster and more maneuverable in the air. Now still more flew in from the direction of Gozzo. Some of their 72 Harry Turtledove fliers released their eggs from on high, as was the usual Forthwegian prac- tice - the usual practice everywhere, so far as Leofslg knew. But the enemy, with Algarvian panache, had also found a new way. Some of the Algarvian fliers made their dragons stoop on the Forthwegian forces below like a falcon stooping on a mouse. They loosed the eggs the dragons carried at what seemed hardly more than treetop height, then pulled out of their dives and flew away, no doubt laughing at their foes' discomfiture. One of them, off to Leofsig's night, misjudged his dive and smashed into the ground. The egg he carried erupted, searing flier and dragon both in its burst of flame. "Serves you right!" Leofsig shouted, though the flier was far beyond hearing. But the Algarvian's swooping comrades kept on, placing their eggs far more precisely than did those who did not dive;, they tore terrible holes in the Forthwegians' ranks. "Forward!" an officer shouted. Leofsig heard him through stunned and battered ears. "We must go forward, for the honor of King Penda and of Forthweg!" Forward Leofsig stumbled. Around him, men raised a cheer. After a moment, he J oined it. Turning to Beocca, he said, "Once we close with the Algarvians, we'll crush them." "Aye, belike," Beocca answered, "if there are any of us left to do the closing." As if to underscore that, more eggs started falling among the advanc- ing Forthwegians. Not all of them - not even most of them - came from the dragons overhead. The army had come into range of the egg-tossers outside Gozzo. Dragons carried larger eggs than the tossers flung, but could not carry nearly so many; Leofsig, head down and hunched forward as if walking into a windstorm, trudged past a broken-backed unicorn, one side of its body all over burns, that dragged itself along on its forelegs and screamed like a woman. Forthwegian egg-tossers answered the rain of fire as best they could. But they'd had trouble keeping up with the rest of the army: horse-drawn wheeled tossers clogged roads and moved slowly going crosscountry, while the retreating Algarvians had sabotaged ley lines as they fell back. Forthwegian mages had reenergized some, but far from all. And, to make matters worse, the diving dragons paid special attention to the egg-tossers that were on the field. INTo THE DAPLKNESS rac- ay. the osed crop hing hed agon the s kept dive; tined a and fter a e with do the dvanc- e from -tossers g, but unched acked ong on could. e-drawn country, 11 back. to make g-tossers 73 Up ahead, Forthwegian cavalry was skirmishing with Algarvian troop- ers on horses and unicorns. Leofsig cheered when a Forthwegian officer's white unicorn gored an enemy horseman out of the saddle. He squatted down behind a bush and blazed at the Algarvian cavalry. The range was long, and he could not be sure his was the beam that did the job, but he thought he knocked a couple of redheads out of the saddle. And then, when he blazed, no beam shot from the business end of the stick. He looked around for a supply cart, spied none, and then looked around for a casualty. On this field, casualties were all too easy to find. Leofsig scurried over to a Forthwegian who would never need his stick again. He snatched up the stick and dashed back to cover. An Algarvian beam drew a brown line in the grass ahead of him, but did not sear his flesh. As more Forthwegian footsoldiers came forward to add their numbers to those of the cavalry, the Algarvian horsemen and unicorn riders began to fall back. Leofsig grunted in somber satisfaction as he advanced toward a large grove of orange trees. This skirmish, though bigger than most, fit the pattern of the fights that had followed Forthweg's invasion of Algarve. The Algarvians might have won the battle in the air, but they kept on yielding ground even so. Under the shiny, dark green leaves of the orange trees, something stirred. Leofsig was too far away to blaze at the motion, too far away even to identify what caused it till a great force of behemoths came lumbering out of the grove. Their armor glittered * in the sun. Each great beast bore several riders. Some behemoths had sticks larger and heavier and stronger than a man could carry strapped on to their backs. Others carried egg- tossers instead. Forthweg used behemoths to help break into positions infantry could not take unaided, parceling the animals out along the whole broad fight- ing line. Leofsig had never seen so many all gathered together before. He did not like the look of them. He liked that look even less when they lowered their heads, pointing their great horns toward the Forthwegian force, and lumbered for-ward. They moved slowly at first, but soon built up speed. They smashed through the Forthwegian cavalry as if it hadn't been there, trampling down horses and unicorns. As they charged, the crews of soldiers on their backs blazed and flung eggs, spreading havoc far and 74 Harty Turtledove wide. The behemoths were hard to bring down. Their armor warded them against most blazes, and, while they were moving, the men on their backs - who, Leofsig saw, were also armored - were next to impossible to pick off. The cavalry, or as much of it as could, fled before them, as the Forthwegian dragons had fled before those of Algarve. The Algarvian dragons now redoubled their attacks against the Forthwegians on the ground as the behemoths broke in among them. Leofsig blazed at the warriors aboard the closest one - blazed and missed. An egg burst close by him, knocking him off his feet and scraping his face against the dirt. He scrambled up again. Algarvian footsoldiers were advancing now, rushing toward the great hole the behemoths had torn in the Forthwegian line. He saw an officer close by - not a man he knew, but an officer. "What do we do, sit?" "What do we do?" the captain echoed. He looked and sourided stunned, bewildered. "We fall back - what else can we do? fhey've beaten us here, the bastards. We have to be able to try to fight them again, though how we're supposed to fight this-" Shaking his head, he stum- bled off toward the west, toward Forthweg. Numbly, Leofsig followed. Without false modesty, Marshal Rathar knew he was the second most powerful personage in Unkerlant. None of the dukes and barons and counts could come close to matching the authority of the man who headed King Swernmel's arrmies. None of the courtiers at Cottbus was his equal, either, and none of them had made the king believe Rathar a traitor, though many had tried. Aye, below Swemmel he was supreme. Envy filled men's eyes as he marched through the fortresslike palace on the high ground at the heart of the capital. The green sash stretching diagonally across his rock-gray tunic proclaimed his rank to any who did not recognize his hard, stem features. Women the world called beautiful called those features hand- some- lic couid have had many of them, including some whose courtier husbancls sought to lbringWlm t0,)U> -,~iytv ctT- tainty which of them wanted him for himself, as opposed to for his rank, he might have enjoyed himself more. Or he might not have. Enjoyment, as most men understood it, he di not find particularly enjoyable. And he knew a secret no one else did ay rn d- ier er- k, INTo THE DARKNESS 75 though some of his own chief underlings and some of King Swemmel's other ministers might have suspected. He could have told the secret with out danger. But he knew no one would believe him, and so kept silent. Silence suited his nature anyhow. Before he went in to confer with his sovereign, he unbuckled his sword and set it in a rack in the anteroom outside the audience chamber. King Swernmel's guards then searched him, as thoroughly and intimately as if he'd been taken captive. Had he been a woman, matrons would have done the same. He felt no humiliation. The guards were doing their duty. He would have been angry - and King Swernmel angrier - had they let him go through unchallenged. "Pass on, sir," one of them said at length. Rathar spent another moment adjusting his tunic, then strode into the audience chamber. In the presence of the king of Unkerlant, his stern reserve crumbled. "Your Majesty!" he cried. "I rejoice to be allowed to come into your presence!" He cast himself down on his hands and knees, knocking his forehead against the strip of green carpet that led to the throne on which King Swernmel sat. Any chair on which Swemmel sat was by definition a throne, since it contained the king's fundament. This one, while gilded, was far less spec tacular than the bejeweled magnificence of the one of the Grand Hall of Kings (Rathar reckoned that one insufferably gaudy, another secret he held close). "Rise, Marshal," Swernmel said. His voice was rather high and thin. Rathar got to his feet and honored the king yet again, this time with a low bow. Swernmel was in his late forties, a few years younger than his marshal. For an Unkerlanter's, his features were long and lean and angular; his hairline, which retreated toward the crown of his head, accentuated that impression. What hair he had left was dark - these days, probably dyed to stay so. But for that, he looked more like an Algarvian than a typical Unkerlanter. The first kings in Unkerlant, down in what was now the Duchy of Grelz, had been of Algarvic blood. Algarvic bandits, most likely, the marshal thought. But those dynasties were long extinct, often at one another's hands. And Swemmel was an Unkerlanter through and through - he just did didn't look like one. did,Rathar shook his head, clearing away irrelevancies. He couldn't afford I 76 Harry Turtledove them, not dealing with his sovereign. "How may I serve you, your Majesty?" he asked. Swernmel folded his arms across his chest. His robe was gorgeous with cloth-of-gold. Pearls and emeralds and rubles caught the light and winked at Rathar one after another as the king moved. "You know we have con_ cluded a truce with Arpad of Gyongyos," Swernmel. said. The we was purely royal - the king had done it on his own. "Aye, your Majesty, I know that," Rathar said. Swernmel had fought a savage little war with the Gongs over territory that, in the marshal's view, wasn't worth having in the first place. He'd fought it with great determination, as if the rocks and ice in the far west, land only a mountain ape could love, were stuffed to bursting with rich farms and quicksilver mines. And then, after all the lives and treasure spent, he'd thrown over the war with no gains to speak of Swemmel was a law unto himself He said, "We have found another employment for our soldiers, one that suits us better." "And that is, your Majesty?" Rathar asked cautiously. It might have been anything from starting another war to helping with the harvest to- gathering seashells by the shore. With Swemmel, there was no way to ten beforehand. "Gyongyos is far from the only realm that wronged us during our recent difficulties," Swernmel said, adding with a scowl, "Had the nurse- maids been efficient, Kyot would have known from birth we were the one destined for greatness. His destiny would have been the headsman's axe either way, but he would have spared the kingdom much turmoil had he recognized it sooner." "Aye, your Majesty," Rathar said. He had no way of knowing whether Swemmel or Kyot was the elder of the twins born to their mother. He'd Joined the one army rather than the other because Swernmel's impressers passed through his village before Kyot's could get to it. He'd been an officer within months, and a colonel by the time the Twinkings War ended. What would he be now, had Kyot dragged him into the fight instead? Dead, most likely, in one unpleasant way or another. Again, he cleared might-have-beens from his mind. Dealing with what was gave him trouble aplenty. "Is it now your will, your Majesty, to turn our might against Zuwayza? The provocations along the border INTo THE DARKNESS they have offered" - he knew perfectly well that Unkerlant had offered them, but saying so was not done - "give us every reason for punishing them, and-" Swemmel made a sharp, chopping gesture. Rathar fell silent and bowed his head. He had misread the king, always dangerous to do. Swernmel said, "We can punish the Zuwayzin whenever we like, as we can resume the war with Gyongyos whenever we like. More efficient to strike where the opportunity will not come round again so soon. We aim to lay Forthweg low." "Ahh," Rathar said, and nodded. No one could tell what Swemmel would come up with next. A lot of people had guessed wrong over the years. Not many of them were still breathing. Most of those who did sur- vive were refugees. Anywhere within Unkerlant, Swernmel could - and did - reach. Not all the king's notions were good. That was Rathar's private opinion. He remained safe because it remained private. But when Swernmel's notions were good, they could be very good indeed. Rathar's smile had a predatory edge to it, as it often did. "What pre- text shall we offer for stabbing the Forthwegians in the back?" "Do you really think we need one? We hadn't intended to bother," Swernmel said indifferently. "Forthweg, or most of Forthweg, is our domain by right, and stolen away by rebels and traitors." Rathar said nothing. He raised an eyebrow and waited. Even such small disagreement with the king might mean his ruin. No one could tell what Swcmmel would come up with - in anything. In a testy voice, Swemmel said, "Oh, very well - if you like. You can dress up a couple of our men in Forthwegian frontier guards' uniforms and have them blaze a couple of soldiers or inspectors in a border town. We don't think it even remotely necessary, but if you will, you may." "Thank you, your Majesty," Rathar said. "Advancing a reason for war is customary, and the one you've given will do the job splendidly." Rathar doubted he would have thought of anything so devious himself Swemmel did have a gift for double-dealing. His marshal asked, "As we move forward against the Forthwegians" - Rathar had no doubt the Unkerlanters would move forward, not when they were hitting their foes from behind and by surprise - "shall we move into land that th rer ed to Algarve before the Six Years' War?" 78 Harry Turtledove "No." Swernmel shook his head. "In no way do we intend to do that. We expect the Algarvians to take back their old dominions, and we do not wish to give them any excuse to attack our kingdom." "Very well, your Majesty," Rathar said, not showing how relieved he was. This truly did look to be one of Swernmel's good days, when the king was taking everything into account. Having fought the Algarvians in the Six Years' War before his regiment had mutinied and he'd gone home, Rathar was less than eager to face the redheads again. He went on, "By the accounts of the battle outside Gozzo, the Algarvians are liable to be invading Forthweg any day themselves." "Even so," King Swernmel said. "Nor do we judge that King Mezentio would halt his forces at the old frontier. Thus, if Unkerlant is to take back what is ours, we must move swiftly. King Mezentio, in our view, will not halt at anything, save where he is compelled." "Even by ley-line caravan, transferring our forces from the far western frontier to the border with Gyongyos will take some little while, your Majesty," Rathar warned. He did not disagree with Swernmel about Mezentio - on the contrary - but did not believe his own sovereign knew where to stop, either: another opinion he held close. "Your Majesty's wide domains prove your might, but they also make movement slower than it would be otherwise." "Waste not a moment." Anticipation filled Swerrunel's laugh. "Curse us, but we wish we could be a mosquito in Penda's throne room in Eoforwic, to see his face when he hears Forthweg is invaded from the west. They will have to clean a stain off the throne under him. "I obey, your Majesty." Rathar bowed. "Also, by your leave, I shall send some troops into the desert in the direction of Zuwayza, both to frighten the naked brown men and to mislead the Forthwegians." "Aye, you may do that," King Swernmel said. "We shall be in closest touch with you, ensuring that all motions are carried out with the utmost celerity. In this matter, we shall brook no delay. Do you understand, Marshal?" "Your Majesty, I do." Rathar bowed very low. "I obey. "Of course you obey," Swernmel said. "Unfortunate things happen to pcople who disobey me. Even more unfortunate things happen to r families. Obedience, then, is efficient." He waved a hand, a brusclue Unkerlanter gesture rather than an airy Algarvian one. "Go, and see to it." INTo THE DARKNESS ans one on, le to stem your out reign Your ment Curse in in 11 the I shall oth to st st tand, Pei] to o their rusquc to it." 79 Rathar went down on his hands and knees and knocked his head on the green carpet again. He could feel the fear-sweat on his skin as he did so. Swernmel commanded fear both by virtue of his office and by virtue of his person. Swernmel commanded fear - and fear obeyed. After escaping the audience chamber, Rathar reclaimed his sword from the bowing attendants in the anteroom. His spirit strengthened with every step away from his sovereign he took. His own aides bowed low and called him lord when he returned to his offices. They humied to obey the orders he issued, and exclaimed in excitement as they worked. He took a quiet pride in his own compe- tence. But all the while, the secret stayed in the back of his mind: being the second most powerful man in Unkerlant was exactly like being the next greatest whole number before one. Zero he was, and zero he would remain. I I Cornelu stood on the pier in Tirgoviste harbor, listening to last- minute orders. Commodore Delfirm sounded serious, even somber: "Do as much damage to the wharves at Feltre as you can, Commander. Do as much as you can, but come home safe. Sibiu has not got so many men that we can afford to spend them lavishly." "I understand." Cornelu bowed to Delfinu, who was not only com- modore but also count. "I will do what needs doing, that's all. The niis- sion is important, else you would not send me on it." Delfirm returned the bow, then took Cornelu's face in his hands and kissed him on both cheeks. "The mission is important. That you return is also important - you will undertake more missions as the war goes on." Afternoon sun glittered from the six gold stripes on the sleeves of Delfirm's sea-green uniform tunic and from the gold trim on his kilt. Had Comehi been in uniform, his tunic sleeves would have borne four stripes each. Instead, he wore a black rubber suit whose only marking was the impress of the five crowns of Sibiu above his heart. A rubber pack thumped on his back. He walked awkwardly to the edge of the pier; his feet bore rubber paddles that let him swim more swiftly than he could have without them. Waiting in the water for him was a medium-sized dark gray leviathan: the beast was five or six times as long as he was tall, as opposed to the great ones, which might reach twice that size. 80 Harty Turtledove One of the leviathan's small black eyes turned toward him. "Hello, Eforiel," he said. The leviathan let out a grunting snort and opened a mouth full of long, sharp teeth. They were shaped for catching fish. If they closed on a man, though, she could swallow him in about two bites. Cornelu slid into the water and grasped the harness wrapped around Efoniel's body and held in place by the leviathan's fins. He patted the beast's smooth skin, whose texture was not much different from that of his own rubber suit. It was not a pat that gave any order, merely one of greeting. He was fond of Eforiel. He'd named her after the first girl he'd bedded, but he was the only one who knew that. Under Eforiel's belly, the harness supported several eggs in strearrilined cases partly filled with air so as to make them no heavier than a corre- sponding volume of water. Cornelu bared his teeth in a fierce smile. Before long, he would deliver those eggs to Feltre. He hoped the Algarvians would be glad to have them. Commodore Delfinu leaned out over the edge of the pier and waved. "Good fortune go with you." "For this I thank you, sit," Cornelu said. He tapped Eforiel, more firnily than before. The leviathan's muscles surged under him. With a flick of the tall, Eforiel left Tirgoviste harbor and the five chief islands of Sibiu behind and set out across more than fifty miles of sea for the Algarvian coast. "Surprise," Cornelu muttered. He had trouble hearing himself; water kept slapping him in the face. Before he set out, Sibian wizards had set a spell on him that let him get air from water like a fish (actually, the savants insisted the spell worked differently from fishes' gills, but the effect was the same, and that was what mattered to Cornelu). Algarvian ships no doubt patrolled the ley lines, to keep the Sibian navy and that of Valmiera from raiding Feltre, which had been by far the most important Algarvian port on the Narrow Sea till King Mezentio got his hands on Bari. The Duchy boasted a couple of excellent harbors. With them under Algarvian rule, containing Mezentio's fleet got a lot harder. "But I'm not coining up a ley line," Cornelu said, and chuckled wetly. Unlike ships, Eforiel did not depend on the earth's energy matrix to take her from one place to another. She went under her own power, which meant she chose her own path. No one would be looking for her till she'd been there and gone. INTo THE DARKNESS 81 That thought had hardly crossed Cornelu's mind before he got a nasty jolt: a spout rising from the sea a few hundred yards ahead of Eforiel. Had his path, by strangest chance, crossed that of an Algarvian leviathan nicler intent on working mischief at Tirgoviste or one of Sibiu's other harbors? Then the animal leapt out of the water. Cornelu sighed with relief to see it was only a whale. The leviathan's cousin was stocky, even chunky, and resembled nothing so much as an overgrown fish with an even more overgrown head. Eforiel and her kin were far slimmer and smaller- skulled, almost serpentlike except for their fins and tail flukes. "Come on, sweetheart." He tapped the leviathan again. "Nothing for us to worry about - only one of your poor relations." Eforiel snorted again, as if to say she too looked down her pointed nose at whales. Then she swam through a school of mackerel. Cornelu had a hard time keeping her on a straight course and not letting her swim every which way after the fish. She got plenty as things were, but seemed con- vinced she would have eaten many more if he'd let her go where she wanted. She could have gone, disobeying his commands, and he would have been able to do nothing about it. She never realized that. She was a well- trained beast, raised from the time she was a calf to do as the small, weak creatures who rode her ordered. Cornelu's greatest worry was not her going off in pursuit of mackerel but her diving deep after one. The spell would keep him breathing under water, but a leviathan could dive deeper than a man's body was designed for, and could rise from the depths so fast that the air in his blood would bubble. Leviathans were made for the sea in a whole host of ways men were not. After a while, though, the mackerel thinned out, and Efoniel swam steadily on. Once, in the distance, Cornelu caught sight of a ship sliding along a ley line. He could not tell whether it came from Sibiu or Algarve. In the waters where he was then, it might have belonged to either kingdom. Whosever ship it was, no one aboard noticed him or Efori*el. The two of them did not disturb the ley lines in any way. Had the ancient Kaunians thought of something like this, they might have done it, though they'd known nothing of eggs and lacked the sorcery to keep a man from drowning underwater. 82 Harry Turtledove Some few in Sibiu would sooner have joined with Algarve than with the Kaunian-descended kingdoms. Cornelu's snort sounded very much like Eforiel's. Some few in Sibiu were fools, as far as he was concerned. A small kingdom joined a large one in much the same way as a leg of mutton joined a man dining off it. And after his repast, only the bones would be left. No, Valmiera and Jelgava made better allies. If they sat down at the supper table with Sibiu, they thought of the island kingdom as a fellow guest, not as the main course. "If Sibiu sat off the Valmieran coast, things might be different," Comelu told the leviathan. "But we don't. We are where we are, and we can't do anything about it." Eforiel did not argue, a trait Cornelu wished were more common among the people with whom he dealt. He patted the leviathan's side in approval. And then, as if to prove him right even had Eforiel argued, he spied the southern coast of Algarve. He had to pause to get his bearings. He and Efon'el had come a little too far to the east. The leviathan swam along the coast till in the distance Cornelu spotted the lighthouse outside Feltre harbor. He let Eforiel rest then. Daylight was fading from the sky. He intended to enter the harbor at night, to make the leviathan as hard to see as he could. She would have to spout every now and then, of course, but in the darkness she would be easy to mistake for a porpoise or dolphin. People had a way of seeing what they wanted to see, what they expected to see. Cornelu smiled. He intended to take full advantage of that. No lamps began to glow as night fell over Feltre. The town got darker and darker along with the surrounding countryside. Cornelu's smile got broader. The locals were doing their best to protect Feltre against dragon r'ds f al rom Sibiu and Valmiera. What helped there, though, would hurt against attack from the sea. When the night had grown dark enough to suit Cornelu, he took a glass-fronted mask from the pack he wore and slid it on to his face. Then he tapped Eforiel, urging her ahead into the harbor. The leviathan's tai~ pumped up and down, up and down, propelling her and the man who rode her forward. Cornelu slid off her back and clung to the harness from beside her. That way, he would be harder for the Algarvian patrol boats to notice. He knew they had swift little vessels sliding along the ley lines in the INTo THE DARKNESS a 0 er. ce. 83 sheltered water inside the harbor. Every kingdom protected its ports the same way. But he had to stick his head out of the water to see where the Most valuable targets were berthed, and also to make certain he did not attach an egg to a trading ship from Lagoas or Kuusamo. He wanted to grind his teeth at the arrogance the folk on the great island displayed, assum- ing no one would dare stop them from trading with Algarve for fear of bringing them into the war on King Mezentio's side. The trouble was, they were right. He wished he could spot unquestioned naval vessels, but, save for the flitting patrol boats, he saw none. He did see three large freighters with the rakish lines the Algarvians so loved. They would do: not the haul he'd hoped for, but one that would hurt the enemy. He guided Eforiel up to within a couple of hundred yards of them, then gave her the signal that meant hold still. She lay in the water as if dead, the top of her head awash so she could breathe. She would be vulnerable if the Algarvian patrol boats spotted her. Comelu's command would hold her in place while she should be fleeing. He knew he had to work as fast as he could. Slipping under the water, he detached the four eggs his leviathan had brought to Feltre harbor and swam toward the merchant vessels. He had to lift his head above the surface a couple of times to get his bearings. Had the Algarvians on those freighters been keeping good watch, they might have spotted him. But they seemed confident nothing could harm them here inside Feltre harbor. Cornelu aimed to show them otherwise. Everything went as smooth as a caravan down a ley line. He attached one egg to the first merchant ship, two to the second - the largest - and one to the third. The sorcery in the shells would make them burst four hours after they touched iron. By then, he would be long gone. He swam back to Eforiel. They cleared the harbor even more easily than they had entered. None of the Algarvian patrol boats came near them. Not long after they reached the open sea, the moon rose, spilling pale light over the water. Along with the wheeling stars, it helped Cornelu guide the leviathan across the sea and back to Sibiu. They reached Tirgoviste harbor as the sun was rising once more. I I 84 Harry Turtledove Commodore Delfinu waited on the pier. As soon as the weary Cornelu climbed out of the water, his superior kissed him on both cheeks. "Magnificently done!" Delfinu exclaimed. "One of those ships was full of eggs itself, and wrecked a good stretch of the harbor when it went up. Our mages have picked up nothing but fury in the Algarvian crystal messages they steal. You are a hero, Cornelu!" "Sir, I am a tired hero." Cornelu smothered a yawn. "Better a tired hero than a dead one," Deffinu said. "We also sent leviathans to the Barian ports, and have no word of success from them. If they failed they probably did not survive, poor brave men." "How strange," Cornelu said. "The Algarvians hardly kept any sort of watch over the approaches to Feltre. Why should they do any differently at the Banian ports?" Men going off to war had a sort of glamour to them. So thought Vanal I ; at any rate. Forthwegians in uniform had seemed quite splendid to her as'~, they tramped east through Oyngestun on their way toward Algarve. Had she seen them in their ordinary tunics, she would not have given them a second glance - unless to make sure they weren't seeking to molest her. No such glamour attached itself to men retreating from war. Vanai quickly discovered that, too. Retreating, they did not move in neat columns, all their legs going back and f6rth together like the oars of a war galley from the Kaunian Empire. They weren't all nearly identical, with only the occasional blond Kaunian head among the dark Forthwegians distinguishing a few from the rest. Retreating, men skulked along in small packs, as stray dogs did. Vanai feared they were liable to turn on her, as stray dogs might. They had that look, wild, half fierce, half fearful another rock or another blow from a club might knock them sprawling. They didn't look identical any more, either. Their tunics were variously torn and tattered, with spots of dirt and grease and sometimes bloodstains mottling the cloth. Some of them had bandages on anris or legs or head. They were almost uniformly filthy, filthier than the ancient Kaunians Vanai had viewed with Brivibas's archaeological sorcery. The nose-wrinkling odor that clung to them put her in rumd of the farmyard. Like the rest of the folk of Oyngestim, Forthwegians and Kaumans alike, Vanai did what she could for them, offening bread and sausage and INTo THE DARKNESS of ans ere es ians; and 85 water and, while it lasted, wine. "My thanks, lass," said a Forthwegian lance-corporal who was well-spoken enough but who hadn't bathed in a long, long time. He lowered his voice: "You folk here may want to get on the road to Eoforwic. Gromheort's not going to hold, and if it doesn't, this wide spot in the road won't, either." He spoke to her as an equal, not looking down his curved nose at her because she was of Kaunian blood. She found even the casual assumption that he was as good as she on the offensive side, but not nearly so much as the leering superiority so many Forthwegians displayed. Because of that, she answered politely enough: "I don't think you could pry my grandfather out of Oyngestun with a team of mules." "What about a team of behemoths?" the Forthwegian soldier demanded. For a moment, naked fear filled his face. "The Algarvians have more of the horrible things than you can shake a stick at, and they hit hard, too. What about a team of dragons? I've never imagined so many eggs could fall out of the sky on us." He gulped the mug of water Vanai had given him dry. She refilled it, and he gulped once more. "He's very stubborn," Vanai said. The lance-corporal finished the second mug of water and shrugged, as if to say it wasn't his problem. He wiped his mouth on his sleeve, gave the mug back to Vanai with another word of thanks, and trudged off toward the west. Brivibas came out of the house as Vanai was slicing more bread. "Yod were unduly familiar with that man, my granddaughter," he said severely. Reprimands sounded much harsher in Kaunian than in Forthwegian. Vanal bowed her head. "I am sorry you think so, my grandfather, but he was giving me advice he thought good. I would have been rude to scorn him." "Advice he thought good?" Brivibas snorted. "I daresay he was: advice on which haystack to meet him behind, I shouldn't wonder." "No, nothing like that, my grandfather," Vanai said. "His view is that we might be wise to abandon Oyngestun." "Why?" Her grandfather snorted again. "Because staying would mean we had Algarvians lording it over us instead of Forthwegians?" Brivibas set hands on hips, threw back his head, and laughed scornfully. "Why this should make a difference surpasses my poor understanding." "But if the fighting goes through here, my grandfather, whoever holds Oyngestun will be lording it over the dead," Vanal answered. 86 Harry Turtledove "And if we flee, the Algarvian dragons will drop eggs on us from above. A house, at least, offers shelter," Brivibas said. "Besides, I have not yet finished my article refuting Frithstan, and could scarcely carry my research materials and references in a soldierly pack on my back." Vanai was sure that was the biggest reason he refused even to think of leaving the village. She also knew argument was useless. If she fled Oyngestun, she would flee without Briivibas. She could not bear that. "Very well, my grandfather," she said, and bowed her head once more. Another soldier came up. "Here, sweetheart, you have anything for a hungry man to eat?" he asked, adding, "My belly's rubbing my back- bone." Wordlessly, Vanal cut him a length of sausage and a chunk of bread. He took them, blew her a kiss, and went on his way munching. "Disgraceful," Bri'vibas said. "Nothing short of disgraceful." "Oh, I don't know," Vanai said judiciously. "I've heard ten times worse from the Forthwegian boys in Oyngestun. Twenty times worse he was just ... friendly." "Again, undulyfamiliar is the term you seek," Bri'vibas said with pedan- tic precision. "That the local louts are more disgusting does not make this trooper anything but disgusting himself He is bad; they are worse.,, Then a soldier of unmistakable Kaunian blood came by and asked for food and drink. He poured down a mug of water, tore off a big bite of sausage with strong white teeth, and nodded to Vanai. "I thank you, sweetheart," he said, and walked off toward the west. Vanai glanced over to Brivibas. Her grandfather seemed to be studying the stitching in his shoes. Two soldiers came running into Oyngestun within a few seconds of each other, one from the north, the other from the south. They both shouted the same phrase: "Behemoths! Algarvian behemoths!" Each of them pointed back the way he had come and added, "They're over there!" Shouts of alarm rose from the Forthwegian soldiers. Some dashed off to the north, others to the south, to force open the ring the Algarvians were closing around Gromheort and, incidentally, around Oyngestun. Others, despairing, fled westward, to escape before the ring closed. Some of the folk of Oyngestun fled with them, bundling belongings and small children into wheelbarrows and handcarts and carriages and clogging the highway so soldiers had trouble moving. Rather more INTo THE DARKNESS 87 Forthwegians than folk of Kauman blood ran off in the direction of Eoforwic. As Brivibas had said, Kaunians were under alien rule regardless of whether Forthwegian blue and white or Algarvian green, white, and red flew above Oyngestun. "Should we not leave, my grandfather?" Vanal asked again. She trot- ted out the strongest argument she could think of. "How will you be able to go on with your studies in a village full of Algarvian soldiers?" Bn*vlbas hesitated, then firn-dy shook his head. "How will I be able to go on with my studies sleeping in the mud by the side of the road?" He stuck out his chin and looked stubborn. "No. It cannot be. Here I stay, come what may." He looked eastward in defiance. But then, with a thunder of wings, Algarvian dragons flew by low overhead. A few Forthwegian soldiers blazed at them, but did not seem to bring any down. Flames spurted from the dragons' jaws as they swooped down on the roadway packed with soldiers and villagers. Screams rose, faint in the distance but hardly less horrifying for that. The breeze from out of the west wafted the stench of burning back into Oyngestun. Some of what burned smelled like wood. Some smelled like roasting meat. It might have made Vanal hungry, had she not known what it was. As things were, it almost made her sick. More Algarvian dragons fell from the heavens like stones, dropping eggs on the road out of Oyngestun. The bursts smote Vanal's ears. She brought up her hands to cover them, but that did little good. Even though she could not see most of it, even if she muffled her hearing, she knew what was happening off to the west. "It is for this that you waved at the Forthwegian dragonfliers when we went to examine the ancient power point, my granddaughter," Brivibas said. "This is what King Penda sought to visit upon the kingdom of Algarve. Now that he finds it visited upon his own kingdom instead, whom has he to blame?" Vanai looked for such philosophical detachment inside herself. looked for it and found it not. "These are our neighbors who suffer, my grand- father, our neighbors and some of them folk of our blood." "Had they but stayed here rather than foolishly fleeing, they would be safe now," Brivibas said. "Shall I then praise them for their foolishness, cherish them for their want of wisdom?" Before Vanal could answer, the first eggs began falling inside 88 Harry Turtledove Oyngestun. More screams rose, these close and urgent. Algarvian dragons ruled the sky above the village; none painted in Forthwegian colors came flying out of the west to challenge them. More and more eggs fell. "Get down, you lackwits!" a Forthwegian soldier shouted at Vanai and Brivibas. Before Brivibas could move, a shard of glass or brickwork scored a bleeding line across the back of his hand. He stared at the little wound in astonishment. "Who is the fool now, my grandfather?" Vanai asked, speaking to him with more bitterness than she'd ever used before. "Who now wants wisdom?" "Get down!" the soldier yelled again. This time, Brivibas did, though still a beat behind his granddaughter. Cradling the injured hand to his chest, he said, "Who would have imagined, after the Six Years' War, that folk would be eager for molre~ such catastrophes?" His voice was plaintive and without understanding. A Forthwegian officer called, "Build the rubble into barricades! If those redheaded whoresons want this place, they're going to have to pay for it." "That's the spirit!" Vanai shouted in Forthwegian. The officer waved to her and went on directing his men. In pungently sardonic Kaunian, Brivibas said, "Splendid! Encourage him to endanger our lives as well as his own." Still angry, Vanal ignored him. The Forthwegian soldiers briskly went about turning Oyngestun into a strongpoint, They beat back the first Algarvian probe at the town that afternoon. Wounded Algarvians, Vanal discovered, screamed no differently from wounded Kaunians or Forthwepans. But then, toward sunset, the Forthwegian crystallomancer cried in fury and despair. "The Unkerlanters!" he yelled to his commander - and to anyone else who would hear. "The Unkerlanters are pouring over the western border, and there's no one to stop them!" "Now this," Leudast said as he tramped through western Forthweg, "this is what efficiency is all about." Sergeant Magnulf nodded. "You had best believe it, soldier," he said. "Shows the Forthwegians need lessons. If you're stupid enough to start a war on one border when the kingdom on your other border can't stand you, seems to me you deserve whatever happens to you." "I hadn't even thought about that," Leudast said. "I was just thinking we're going to have a lot easier time than we did against the Gyong- yosians." He looked around. "A lot better country to fight in, too." "Aye, so it is," Magnulf agreed. "Remi'nds me of home, as a matter of fact." Leudast pointed west- ward. "My family's farm isn't that far on the other side of the border, and it looks a lot like this back there." He waved. Most of the farm buildings hereabouts were of sun-dried brick bn*ght- ened with whitewash or, less often, paint. Wheat ripened golden in the fields; plump, ripe olives made branches sag. The breeds of cattle and sheep the Forthwegians raised were similar to those with which Leudast had grown up back in Unkerlant. Nor did the Forthwegians themselves look that different from Unkerlanters. They were, most of them, stocky and swarthy, with proud, hook-nosed faces. Save that the men wore beards, Leudast would have been hard pressed to prove he'd entered another kingdom. Most of the beards he saw were grizzled or white; the young men were off in the east, fighting the Algarvians. Graybeards and women, those who had not fled, stared with terrible bitterness as the Unkerlanter soldiers marched past. Every so often, one of them would shout some- thing Leudast almost understood; the Unkerlanter dialect he spoke wasn't 89 90 Harry Turtledove that far removed from Forthwegian. It was close enough to make him certain the locals weren't paying compliments. Every so often, Forthwegian border guards and the small garrisons King Penda had left behind in the west would try to make a stand against the Unkerlanters, defending a line of hills or a town or sending out cavalry to nip at the thick columns of men King Swemmel had flung into their kingdom. They were brave. Leudast couldn't see that it did them much good. The Unkerlanters; flowed around them, surrounded them, and attacked them from all sides at once. Behemoths trampled Forthwegian cavalry underfoot. Unkerlanter officers would go forward under flag of truce to urge sur- renders, pointing out that the Forthwegians could not possibly hope to resist. Their foes sent them back and kept fighting as long as they could. "Inefficient," Magnulf said as his squad encamped one evening after pushing another fifteen or so miles into Forthweg - a typical day's advance. "They aren't stopping us. They're hardly slowing us down. What's the point to throwing their lives away "Stubborn fools," Leudast said. "They should see they're beaten and give up. 'I heard one of them shout, 'Better to die under King Penda than to live under King Swemmel!"' Magnulf said, mimicking the Forthwegian tongue as well as he could. The sergeant shrugged. "I think that's what he said, anyhow. And now he's dead, and it's not going to keep the Forthwegians from living under King Swemmel, not one little bit it's not. We'll be knocking on the door at Eoforwic in another few days." Leudast looked east. "We don't quarrel with the Algarvians, though?" "Not if they stay on their side of what used to be the border before the Six Years' War," Magnulf answered. "We won't cross it - we're just taking back what was ours, not stealing from anybody else." That night, Forthwegian dragons dropped eggs on the Unkerlanters' forward positions. The noise from the bursts kept Leudast awake, but none of them came particularly close. The next morning, the Unkerlanters approached Hwiterne, a city whose stone keep would have been a formidable defense in the days before eggs were flung for miles or fell from dragons. Again, King Swernmel's officers went ahead to ask the town to surrender. Again, the Forthwegian garrison refused. I er y s n. nd to an liat ?11 the just ters but TNJ~f~ 7~ AT) V NTrIZIC 91 Before long, pillars of smoke rose into the sky from Hwiterne. Under cover of that barrage, Unkerlanter troops pushed through the patchily inhabited suburbs and into the town itself. Leudast discovered he had not only Forthwegian soldiers but also townsfolk blazing at him. He blazed back. He blazed at anyone he spied in Hwiterne who wasn't wearing Unkerlanter rock-gray. He suspected he rmight have wounded innocent bystanders. That was inefficient, but not nearly so inefficient as letting himself izet killed. He flopped down in the rubble that had been a house. A woman with a bandage on her head lay not far away from him. He didn't blaze her down; he could see she had no weapon. "Why?" she asked him. "Why did you cursed Unkerlanters come here? Why didn't you leave us alone?" Lendist followed that well enough. "We came to take back what's ours" he ans ered. She glared at him. "Can't you see we don't want you? Can't you see we" - a word he didn't know - "King Swemmel?" Whatever the wor meant he doubted it was nraise. "If you're not strong enough to stop us, what difference does that -L-~" T -1-t. -1-A ;- 1--t- -771~"t She cursed him then, her voice full of bitter hopelessness. He could have killed her for it. No one would have been the wiser. No one who iiiattcrcd to Leudast would have cared at all. She had to know as much. She cursed anyhow, as if defying him to do his worst. He shrugged his broad shoulders. She cursed again, harder than ever. His indifference seemed more wounding to her than rage would have been. Shruaging once more, he said, "You didn't curse when King Penda invaded Al arve What business have on ot doino, it now?" She stared at him. "The Algarvians deserve everything that happens to them We Aon't deserve anv of this " "That's not what King Swernmel thinks," Leudast said. "He's my king. I obey him." Dreadful things happened to Unkerlanters who didn't obey King Swermuel Leudast preferred not to dwell on those A Forthwegian egg burst not far away. Chunks of wood and mud bn*ck rained down on him and the woman with the bandaged head. Dreadful things, he realized, could also happen to Unkerlanters who did obey King Swernmel. For a moment he wondered why in that case he 92 Harry Turtledove He didn't have to search hard for the answer. Dreadful things might not happen to him if he fought the Gongs or the Forthwegians. Nothing too dreadful had happened to him yet. If, on the other hand, he set his own will against the king's ... Swernmel had shown over the years that disaster surely befell anyone rash enough to do such a thing. The Unkerlanters rained eggs on the center of Hwiteme, from which resistance was fiercest. Officers blew whistles. Sergeants shouted. Leudast scrambled to his feet and dashed forward. For a couple of heartbeats, he heard the Forthwegian woman cursing him yet again. Then her voice was lost in the greater din of battle. He ran past the corpse of a behemoth, killed with most of its crew by a Forthwegian egg. A moment later, he dove for cover behind another dead behemoth. A strong stink of burnt meat rose from this one: the Forthwegians had concealed a stick heavy enough to blaze through the beast's armor in a building now wreckage. Leudast warily looked around for more such traps, though the Unkerlanters had driven the foe from this part of Hwiteme. Trying to use behemoths in the middle of a built-up area struck him as inefficient. He wondered if it would strike his officers the same way. Hwiterne fell. So did the keep at its heart, smashed to ruins by the miracles of modem sorcery. Filthy, dejected Forthwegian captives shambled off into the west, a handful of Unkerlanters guarding them. A good many corpses wearing civilian-style tunics rather than those of the Forthwegian army lay in the streets, each dead man with a neat hole blazed in the center of his forehead. Someone had painted a sign in Unkerlanter and what Leudast presumed to be Forthwegian (the Forthwegians used an alphabet different from his): IF YOU ARE NOT A SOLDIER, THIS IS WHAT YOU GET FOR BLAZING AT KING SWEMMEL'S MEN. Some few of the prisoners in Forthwegian uniform were tall, yellow- haired men, not short, swarthy ones. Pointing at them, a soldier in Leudast's company exclaimed, "Powers below! How did the ctrsed Gyongyosians get over here to the other side of the kingdom to help the Forthwegians?" "Those aren't Gongs, Nantwin, you goose," Leudast answered. "They're just Kaunians. They've been here since dirt." "What's a Kaunian?" Nantwin asked. He had a strong Grelzer accent, INTo THE DARKNESS 93 which meant he came from the far south of Unkerlant. No Kaunians in that part of the world, sure enough. "They used to run a whole lot of the northeast," Leudast said, "back before the Algarvians and Forthwegians smashed up their empire.,, "How come they look like Gongs?" Nantwin said. "They don't, really," Leudast said. "Aye, they're blond, but that's about it." The differences seemed obvious to him; there were Kaunians not far from his farming village. Not only were they tall and skinny, but their hair lay flat on their heads, where the Gyongyosians' sprang out wildly in all directions. Kaunians' hair ran to silver gilt, too, while that of the Gongs was a tawny yellow. Such subtleties were lost on Nantwin, who said, "Curse them, they look like Gyongyosians to me." "Fine," Leudast said. "They look like Gongs to you." Life was too short for arguments over things that didn't matter. "Inefficient," he muttered. A prisoner of Kaunian blood stared at him - through him. By the expression on the fellow's face, Leudast looked like scum to him. Leudast laughed. The Kaunian jerked as if he'd stepped on a thorn. Leudast couldn't have cared less about a worthless captive's opinion of him. "Why are you wasting your time gaping at these miserable bastards?" Sergeant Magnulf demanded. "Odds are King Swernmel will put 'em to work rmining brimstone and quicksilver, and they'll never come out from the holes again. They rmight as well be dead already. You get moving." "Sorry, Sergeant," said Leudast, who knew he would be wasting his time if he tried to explain to Magnulf that he'd been trying to show Nantwin the Kaunians of Forthweg were different from Gyongyosians. Magnulf didn't want explanations. Obedience was all he craved. He grunted now, satisfied that he'd got it. "Come on," he said. "We'll be breaking into Eoforwic in another few days." Leudast tramped after him- He would rather have been back on his farm. If he had to find him- self in the middle of a war, though, he was just as well pleased to find himself in the mid e of an ea-v one Colonel Sabrinc, ducked out of his tent. One of the tethered dragons at ffie temporary farm north of Gromheort flapped its wings and hissed at 'V=.T~ie Algarvian dragonflier stopped in his tracks, as if a human foe had insulted him. He sent the most obscene gesture he knew back at the 94 Harry Turtledove dragon, which hissed again; it might have been insulted in turn. Laughing, Sabriino swaggered off toward the officers' club. That too was housed in a tent. The tapman bowed when Sabrino came inside. "How may I please you, my lord?" he asked. "Ifyou'd turn into a beautiful woman, that would give you a head start on the j ob, no doubt about it, " Sabri no answered. A couple of fliers from his wing who were sitting around with drinks in front of them laughed. So did the tapman, though he remained resolutely male and on the homely side. With a sigh, Sabrino said, "I suppose I'll have to content myself with a glass of port. Put it on my scot." "Aye, my lord." The tapman pulled cork from bottle and poured. Sabrino sipped. The fortified wine was not of the best, but it would have to do. Wartime meant sacrifice. "Join us, Colonel, if you would," Captain Domiziano said. He tapped the stool beside him. Senior Lieutenant Orosio, who shared the table with Domiziano, nodded to show the invitation came from him, too. "Don't mind if I do." Sabrino perched on the stool and raised his glass. "Here's to a splendid little war." "A splendid little war," Domiziano and Orosio echoed. They drank with their commanding officer. Orosio said, "As near as I can see, sir, we've got Forthweg in a box with a pretty ribbon around it." "That's how things look to me, too," Sabrino said, nodding. "Pity we had to let them cross the border and do so much damage inside our king- dom, but we've paid them back and then some." "So we have," Domiziano agreed. He had a bandage over one ear, which a Forthwegian beam had cooked. But he'd accounted for four Forthwegian dragons and torn up the enemy's countryside; the small wound hardly seemed to upset him. He went on, "We'd have done the same even if the Unkerlanters hadn't sneaked up behind King Penda and kicked him in the arse." "No doubt about it," Sabrino repeated. "None at all. The Forthwegians are brave enough, but they haven't got enough behemoths and they haven't got enough dragons and they don't quite know what to do with the ones they have got. We'd have needed another couple of weeks to overrun the whole kingdom, but we'd have done it, all right." Orosio scratched at the edge of his goatee. "Sir, what do we do if we meet Unkerlanter dragons in the air?" INTo THE DARKNESS art ed. ave ass. ank sir, The oths at to le of &)'Xi NN t 95 "Pretend they don't exist," Sabrino said at once. "If the fliers blaze at 1 Mezentio you, evade. Not to put too fine a point on it, run away. IliKig_ does not want a war with Unkerlant. I'm told that's going to be-the sub- ject of a general order in the next day or two. We have enough on our plate now without worrying about King Swenimel, too." "I don't think the Unkerlanters are any great worry," Dormiziano said. "We taught them enough of a lesson in the Six Years'War that Swernmel isn't likely to want to tangle with us, either." "Here's hoping," Sabriino said, and drank to the hope. His Jumior officers drank with him. An orderly stuck his head into the officers' club. Spying Sabriino, he immediately looked relieved. "Ali, here you are, sir," he said. "A mes- sage on the crystaIjust came in: your wing is ordered to join in the attack on the town of Wihtgara." He pronounced the uncouth Forthwegian syllables as well as an Algarvian rmight be expected to do. Sabriino drew a map from the vest pocket of his uniform tunic. He spread it out on the table so Domiziano and Orosio could study it, too. After a moment, Sabriino's forefinger stabbed out. "About fifty miles northwest of here," he said, and turned to the orderly once more. "Ten the crystallomancer to reply that we shall be flying within half an hour." He knocked back the rest of his port - it wasn't really good enough to linger over - and nodded to his companions. "Time to give the Forthwegians another dose, lads." As usual, Sabnino had to pick his way among the tethered dragons to keep from fouling his boots with their noxious droppings. As usual, his own mount had forgotten he'd been flying it for years. As usual, it hissed and flapped and spluttered, doing its best to keep him from climbing aboard. It did refrain from trying to flame him down; that was beaten into war dragons from hatchlinghood. For small favors, Sabrino gave thanks. He gave thanks again when the dragon's enormous batwings thundered behind him and the ground dropped away below. The view he got from on high was almost worth putting up with the stupidity and viciousness of dragons. The view of the rest of the dragons in his wing, bellies silvered, backs painted in red and white and green, was splendid, too. " Come on," he said, and tapped his dragon with the goad to bring its course farther north of west. "We can do it." 96 Harry Turtledove The dragon, predictably, didn't want to. As far as it was concerned, was up in the sky to hunt. Sabrino's purposes mattered little to it. It hal been perfectly content to fly along in the direction it had chosen. Whei he tried to get it to change the small stubborn spot that passed for 11 mind, it twisted its head back along the length of its long, sinuous nec and did its best to pluck him off his perch with its teeth. Even though it didn't flame him, its breath, full of the stinks of brirr stone and old meat, was nearly enough to knock him over. "Son of worm!" he shouted, and whacked it in the snout with the iron-she goad. "Daughter of a vulture! I am your better! You shall obey me!"., Every once in a while, a dragon forgot the most fundamental part its training - in which case, the dragonflier never got another chance I curse it. Sabn'no refused to let that risk enter his mind. He whacked tt dragon's scaly snout again. With an irate hiss, it straightened its neck on( more. He gave it another tap, and this time, however sullenly, it swur its path more in the direction of Wihtgara. Down below, Algarvian columns filed down roads and across fielc Here and there, scattered Forthwegian companies tried to withstal them. They had little luck. Sabrino shook his fist at them. "This is wh you get for invading Algarve!" he cried, though only his dragon cou hear him. "What you visited on us, we visit on you a hundredfold." He'd been worried when the Forthwegians approached Gozzo. H the city fallen, King Penda's soldiers could have spread across the plai of northern Algarve and done untold damage. But behemoths a: dragons had turned the battle in front of Gozzo, and turned every fig since, too. However brave the Forthwegians were, they could not sta up against such force. Here and there, the retreating Forthwegians had set fire in the fie. and woods to slow the Algarvians' advance. Had they done that in( systematically, they would have got more good from it. As things we occasional whiffi of smoke rose to Sabrino's nostrils: hardly what t enemy could have hoped to accomplish. More smoke rose above Wihtgara. Sabrino's countrymen I bypassed the town to the north and south and joined hands beyond it, they'd done with Gromheort a few days before. The Forthwegt trapped inside the jaws of the pincers still battled to break free, but tl had little chance. Unicorn cavalry, tiny as dots down below, chargei INTo THE DARKNESS ad re, the had I as t they ged a 97 squadron of behemoths. The egg-tossers and heavy sticks the behemoths bore on their backs wrecked the charge before the Forthwegians got to close quarters. Dragons wheeled above Wihtgara. Till Sabrino drew near, he thought them Algarvian beasts dropping eggs on the defenders below. Then he saw they were painted in blue and white: Forthwegian colors. There were only a dozen of them or so. Without hesitation - or without any more hesitation than balky dragons usually caused - they hurled them- selves at his entire wing. Sabn'no waved to his dragonfliers. "If they want it, we'll give it to them!" he shouted, though he didn't think any of the other men could hear. That they would give it to the Forthwegians, he had no doubt. Even after losses in the fighting thus far, he still commanded four times as many dragons as the foe had. Like the unicorn cavalry down on the ground, the Forthwegian dragonfliers cared nothing about the odds. On they came. Sabrino's dragon made a noise that reminded him of hot oil sizzling in a frying pan about the size of a small duchy: a challenge. Sabriino raised his stick and blazed at the nearest Forthwegian. If he didn't have to fight at close quar- ters, he didn't want to, no matter how eager his mount was to flame the Forthwegian dragon out of the sky. But blazing straight wasn't easy, not with both him and the Forthwegian moving at high speed along courses that changed unpre- dictably as one dragon or the other took it into its ferocious, empty head to dodge a little. Fighting in the air wasn't just man against man. It was also dragon against dragon, and the beasts wanted nothing more than to bum each other and tear each other to shreds. Here came the Forthwegian. He had some idea of what he was about, and a dragon that, by Forthwegian standards, was decently trained: the beast rose to give him a clear blaze at Sabrinc, instead of simply trying to close with the Algarvian's dragon. Sabrino flattened himself against his mount's neck to present a harder target as he goaded his dragon to climb, too. And Forthwegian standards did not measure up to those practiced in `Km~ Mtze_ntio's domain. Moreover, Sabnino's dragon was larger and stronger and swifter than his foe's. He outclimbed the Forthwegian and got routid behind him, despite the enemy's best efforts to twist in the air. 98 Harry Turtledove When Sabrino's dragon flamed, fire licked the other beast's back and left wing. The Forthwegian dragon's hissing shriek of anguish was music to Sabrino's ears. Very likely, the Forthwegian dragonflier shrieked, too, but his cry, if he made one, was lost in the greater cry of his mount. The enemy dragon plummeted out of the sky, not just burnt but burning. Because of the brimstone and quicksilver that had helped fuel it, dragon- fire clung and clung. Sabriino's dragon bellowed its triumph and spurted more flame. He whacked it with the goad to make it stop. It Inlight need that fire in future fights. His head swiveled as he tried to see which of his dragonfliers needed help. He spied none who did. Most of the Forthwegian dragons were falling in flames (so, he was sad to see, were a couple painted in Algarvian colors). A couple of the enemy flew west, off to the shrinking stretch of territory Forthweg still held. And one, its flier blazed off it, struck out at the dragons around it like the wild beast it was till it too tumbled out of the sky. More dragons were flying in out of the east, these lower, and with eggs slung under their bellies. As the eggs began falling on Wihtgara, Sabrino smiled broadly. "A splendid little war!" he cried, exultation in his voice. "Splendid!" Occupied. Ealstan had heard the word before the war, of course. He'd heard it, and thought he'd known what it meant. Now he was learning the bitter difference between knowledge and experience. Occupation meant Algarvian troops swaggering along the streets of Gromheort. They all had sticks at the ready, and they all expected every- body to understand Algarvian. People who didn't understand the ugly, trilling speech - in Ealstan's ears, it sounded like magpies' chatter - fast enough to suit them were liable to get blazed for no better reason than that. No one could punish the Algarvians for doing such things. Their commanders probably praised them. Occupation meant that Ealstan's mother and sister stayed inside their house and sent him or his father out when they needed errands run. The Algarvians hadn't perpetuated that many outrages, but they'd done enough to make decent Forthwegian women uninterested in taking chances. INTo THE DARKNESS ce. ing s of than heir their The done aking 99 Occupation meant that Sidroc and his family crowded the house to overflowing. An egg had turned their home to rubble. Ealstan knew it could have been his as easily as not. Sidroc and his father - Ealstan's father's brother - still shambled around as if stunned, for his mother and sister had been in the house when the egg burst. Occupation meant broadsheets written in awkward Forthwegian going up on almost every wall that hadn't been knocked flat. THE KAUNIAN KINGDOMS YOU LED INTO THAT WAR, some of them said. Others asked, WHY DO FORTHWEGIANS FOR KAUNIANS DIE? Ealstan had never had any particular use for the Kaunians who lived within Forthweg's borders - except watching the blond women in their tight trousers. If the Algarvians wanted him to hate them, though, there had to be more to them than he'd thought. Occupation meant having no idea what had happened to his brother, Leofsig. That was worst of all. And yet, even with Count Brorda fled and an Algarvian officer ensconced in his castle, life had to go on. Ealstan's sister stuffed a chunk of garlicky sausage, some salted olives, a lump of hard white cheese, and some raisins into a cloth sack and thrust it at him. "Here," she said. "Don't dawdle. You'll be late for school." "Thanks, Conberge," Ealstan said. "Remember to stop at a baker's on the way home and bring us more bread," Conberge told him. "Or if the bakers are all out, get ten pounds of flour from a miner. Mother and I can do the baking perfectly well." "All right." Ealstan paused. "What if the millers are out of flour, too?" His sister looked a bit harried. "In that case, we all start going hungry. It wouldn't surprise me a bit." She raised her voice to a shout: "Sidroc! Aren't you ready yet? Your masters will beat you black and blue, and you'll deserve it." Sidroc was still running a tortoiseshell comb through his dark, curly hair when he hum*ed into the kitchen to receive a lunch similar to Ealstan's. "Come on," Ealstan said. "Conberge's right - they'll break switches on our backs if we're late again.9' "I suppose so," Sidroc said indifferently. Maybe he needed a thrashing to bring him out of his funk. Ealstan didn't, and didn't want to get one bccause his cousin remained in a daze. He grabbed Sidroc by the arm and hauled him out on to the street. Harry Turtledove No Algarvians were strutting past his house, for which he was duly grateful. The mere sight of kilts set his teeth on edge. Being unable to taunt the Algarvians hurt, too, but he didn't care to take his life in his hands. Women were not the only ones the occupiers outraged. Ealstan was sure Leofsig and his comrades had done no such things while on Algarvian soil. No: that Leofsig and his comrades could have done such things never entered his mind. And even if they had, the Algarvians. would have deserved it. When he turned the comer on to the main thoroughfare that led to his school, Ealstan could no longer pretend Gromheort remained a free Forthwegian city. For one thing, the Algarvians had checkpoints eve~y few blocks. For another, signboards written in their script - so sinuous as to be hard to read, especially for someone like Ealstan, who was used to angular Forthwegian characters - sprouted everywhere. And, for a third, heading up the thoroughfare toward the school showed him what a battering Gromheort had taken before it finally fell. The Algarvians had set gangs to work clearing the wreckage of ruined buildings. "Work, cursing you!" a kilted soldier shoute in bad Forthwegian. The Forthwegians and Kaunians the oc~opiers had rounded up were already working, throwing tiles and chunks of bricks and shattered timbers into wagons. A Kaunian woman bent to pick up a couple of bricks. An Algarvian soldier reached out and ran his hand along the curve of her buttocks. She straightened with a squeak of outrage. The soldier and his com- panions laughed. "Work!" he said, and gestured with his stick. Her face a frozen mask, she bent once more. He foridled her again. This time, she went on working as if he did not exist. Ealstan hustled past the work gang, lest the Algarvians make him Join it. Sidroc followed, but kept looking back over his shoulder. His eyes were wide and staring as he watched the solider amuse himself. "Come on," Ealstan said impatiently. "Powers above," Sidroc muttered, as much to himself as to his cousin. "Wouldn't you like to do that with a woman?" "Sure I would, if she wanted me to," Ealstan answered, even though thinking a woman might one day want him to do such a thing required all the imagination he had. But despite that, he noted a distinction Sidroc had missed: "That soldier wasn't doing it with her - he was doing it tc INTo THE DAPLKNESS to free up a ong om- face she join eyes ome usin. ough uired idroc it to 101 her. Did you see her face? If looks could kin, she'd have wiped out all those stinking redheads." Sidroc tossed his head. "She was only a Kaunian." "You think the Algarvian cared?" Ealstan asked, and shook his head to give the question his own answer. "He would have done it to" - he started to say to your mother, but checked himself-, that hit harder than he wanted to - "to Conberge the same way. Everybody's fair game to Mezentio's men." "They won," Sidroc said bitterly. "That's what you get when you win: you can do as you please." "I suppose so," Ealstan said. "I never thought we could lose." "We cursed well did," Sidroc said. "We might even be worse off, you know? Would you rather we were off in the west, and King Swernmel's Unkerlanters came stomping through Gromheort? If I had to chose between them and the Algarvians-" "If I could make a choice, I'd choose to have all of them go far, far away." Ealstan sighed. "But magic doesn't work that way. I wish it did." They got to the school just as the warning bell clanged, and then ran like madmen to their first class. In spite of his lethargy, Sidroc didn't want to have his back striped after all. "Why couldn't the Algarvians have dropped an egg here?" he muttered fretfully as he flung his bottom on to his stool. But the master of classical Kaunian was not in the chamber to note - and to punish - his tardiness and Ealstan's. After a heartfelt sigh of relief, Ealstan turned to the scholar next to him and whispered, "Did Master Bede have to visit the jakes?" "Don't think so," the other youth answered. "I haven't seen him at all this morning. Maybe the Algarvians have him grubbing stones." "He'd be on the other end of the switch if they do," Ealstan said. Seeing the Kaunian woman molested had bothered him. He could contemplate the master's being put to hard labor without batting an eye. A man strode into the classroom. He was a Forthwegian, but he was not Master Bede, even if he did carry a switch in his left hand. "I am Master Agmund," he announced. "From this day forth, by order of the occupying authorities, all studies in classical Kaunian are suspended, the langauge beingiudged useless both because of its antiquated, outmoded 102 Harry Turtledove nature and because folk of Kaunian blood have wickedly attempted to destroy the Kingdom of Algarve." He spoke as if reading from a script. Ealstan gaped. Master Bede and earlier masters of Kaunian had drilled into him - often painfully - that anyone in eastern Derlavai with the slightest claim to culture had to be fluent in the language, regardless of his own blood. Had they been lying? Or did Algarve have its own purposes here? Agmund answered that in a hurry, saying, "Instead, you shall be instructed in Algarvian, in which subject I am your new master. Attend me. One of Ealstan's classmates, a youth named Odda, thrust his hand in the air. When Agmund recognized him, he said, "Master, can we not learn Algarvian from the soldiers in the city? Why, already I can say 'How much for your sister?'Just from having heard them say it so much." A vast silence fell on the classroom. Ealstan stared, adrm*n'ng Odda's defiant bravado. Master Agmund's stare was of a different sort. He advanced on Odda and gave him the fiercest thrashing Ealstan had ever seen. Agmund said, "My clever little friend, if you were half as funny as you think you are, you would be twice as funny as you really are." When the beating was over, the lessons began. Agmund proved him- self a capable enough master, and was plainly fluent in Algarvian. Ealstan repeated the words and phrases the master set him. He had no desire to learn Algarvian, but he had no desire to be whipped, either. He and Sidroc took turns telling the story around the supper table that evening. "The boy did a brave thing," Sidroc's father said. "He certainly did, Uncle Hengist," Ealstan agreed. "Brave, aye," his father said. Hestan looked from Ealstan to Sidroc to Hengist. "Brave, but foolish. The lad suffered for it, as you and your cousin said, and his suffering is not over yet, either, unless I miss my guess. And his fanuily's suffering will barely have begun." Hengist grunted, as if Hestan had hit him in the belly. "You are likely to be right," he said. "Of course this new master is an Algarvian lapdog. What he hears, the redheads win hear.", He pointed to Sidroc. "We have suffered enough already. Whatever you think of this new language master, keep it locked in your head. Never let him suspect it, or we WA all pay." "I don't mind him so much," Sidroc said with a shrug. "And Alga "I INTo THE DAPKNESS looks to be a lot easier than classical Kaunian ever was." That wasn't what Hengist had meant. Ealstan understood as much, even if Sidroc didn't. Understanding such things went with being occu- pled, too. If Sidroc didn't figure them out pretty soon, he would be sorry, and so would everyone around him. Ealstan's mother understood. "Take care, all of you," Elfryth said, and that was also good advice. The next morning, Odda was not in the Algarvian class. He was not in any of his classes that day. He did not return to school the next day, either. Ealstan and Sidroc never saw him again. Ealstan understood the lesson. He hoped his cousin did, too. to to our ess. age will ian 103 King Shazli nibbled at a cake rich with raisins and pistachios. He licked his fingers clean, then glanced at Hajjaj from lowered eyelids. "It would seem King Swernmel did not purpose attacking us after all," he said. When his sovereign decided to talk business, Hajaj could with pro- priety do the same, even if his cake lay on the tray before him only half eaten. "Say rather, your Majesty, that King Swernmel did not yet purpose attacking us," he replied. "You say this even after Unkerlant and Algarve have split Forthweg between them, as a man will tear a peeled tangerine in half that he might share it with his friend?" "Your Majesty, I do," the foreign minister said. "If King Swernmel intended to leave Zuwayza alone, we would not see these continual proddings along the border. Nor would we see his envoy in Bishah lyingly denying that any fault attaches to Unkerlant. When Swernmel is ready, he will do what he will do." Shazli started to reach for his teacup. At the last moment, his hand swerved and seized the goblet that held wine. After drinking, he said, "I confess I am not sorry that King Penda chose to flee south instead of com- ing here." HajjaJ drank wine, too. Thinking of the King of Forthweg as an exile in Bishah was enough to make any Zuwayzi turn to wine, or per- haps to hashish. "We could not very well have turned him away, your Majesty, not if we cared to hold our heads up afterwards," he said, and then, before Shazli could speak, he went on, "We could not very well have kept him here, not if we cared to hold our heads on our shoulders." "You speak nothing but the truth there." Shazli gulped the goblet dry. Harry Turtledove "Well, now he is Yanina's worry. I tell you frankly, I am more glad than I can say that King Tsavellas has to explain to'911IMant how Penda came to go into exile in Patras. Better him than me. Better Yanina than Zuwayza, too." "Indeed." Hajaj tried to make his long, thin, IMI ly face look wide and dour, as if he were an Unkerlanter. "First, King -V,7emmel win demand that Tsavellas turn King Penda over to him. -.01"I when Tsavellas tells him no, he'll start massing troops on the border vioh Yanina. After that" - the Zuwayzi foreign minister shrugged - "he'll -Utobably invade." "If I were Tsavellas, I'd put Penda on a ship oo a dragon bound for Sibiu or Valmiera or Lagoas," Shazli said. M11 I might forgive him for harboring Penda just long enough to palm 11im off on someone else." "Your Majesty, King Swemmel never forgives Aiyone for anything," Hajaj said. "He proved that after the Twinkings Vlar - and those were his own countrymen." King Shazli grunted. "There, I judge, you speak *Othing but the truth. Everything he has done since seating himself ITIMPOly on the throne ol Unkerlant goes toward confirming it." He i*T91M for his wine goblei again, so abruptly that a couple of his gold iisoll--ts clashed together Discovering the goblet was empty, he called for i servant. A womar came in with a jar and refilled the goblet. "Ali, Rkank you, my dear,' Shazli said. He watched her sway out of the -.-mmMinber, then turned hi attention back to Hajaj: Zuwayzin saw too much flesh to let it undul,. stir them. "If, as you seem to think, we are next on Swernmel's list, wha can we do to forestall him?" "Dropping an egg on his palace in Cottbus oii~& have some effect, Hajjaj said dryly. "Past that, we are, as your Majesty must know, in some thing less than the best position." "As I must know. Aye, so I must." Shazli's -weit-th twisted. "Findin allies would be easier if we were of the same 11 RMT111 as most of the oth( folk of Derlaval. If you were a tow-headed, Pir-skinned Ka'Umaj H aj aj - " The foreign minister presumed to interrupt his sovereign (not mu( of a presumption, not with an easygoing king 11.W Shazli): "If I were Kaunian, your Majesty, I'd long since be dead in Mes climate of ours. I no wonder the old Kaunian Empire traded with ARmayza but never tri, INTo THE DARKNESS han me an for him eone . I I ing, were ffect," some- inding e other aunian, t much were a urs. It's er tried 105 planting colonies here. Even more to the point, the only kingdom with whom we share a border is Unkerlant." "Aye." Shazli looked at Hajjaj* as if that were his fault - or perhaps Hajaj was feeling the strain from continued Unkerlanter pressure, to imagine such a thing. "This also makes the search for allies more difficult than it might be otherwise." "No one will ally with us against Unkerlant," Hajaj said. "Forthweg might have, but Forthweg, as we have seen, as we have just discussed, is no more. "And, as we have seen, Unkerlant and Algarve had divided the king- dom between them as smoothly as two butchers chopping up a camel's carcass," Shazli said discontentedly. "I had hoped for better - better from our point of view, worse from theirs." "So had I," HajjaJ* said. "Given half a chance, King Mezentio can be as headstrong as King Swernmel. But, with Algarve so sorely beset from so many sides at once, Mezentio almost has common sense forced upon him." "What an unfortunate development." Shazli paused, looking thought- ful. "Of course, Mezentio no longer has to fret about his western frontier, which may leave him more room to maneuver." "If I may correct your Maj esty, King Mezentio no longer has a war on his western frontier," HaJjaj said. "With Unkerlant as his new neighbor, he would be a fool indeed did he not fret about it." "You have the night of it there, Hajaj, without a doubt," King Shazli admitted. "See how delighted we are, for instance, to have Unkerlant for a neighbor. And Unkerlant and Algarve are by no means enamored of each other. Have we any hope of exploiting that to our advantage?" "As your Majesty will know, I have had certain conversations with the Algarvian minister here in Bishah," HajjaJ answered. "I fear, however, that Marquis Balastro has not been encouraging." "What ofJelgava and Valmiera?" Shazli asked. "They are sympathetic." HajaJ raised an eyebrow. "Sympathy, how- ever, is worth its weight in gold." King Shazli pondered that for a moment, then laughed. It was not a happy laugh. HaJjaJ went on, "Also, the Kaunian kingdoms are not only warring against Algarve but very far away. Shazli sighed and drained his second goblet of wine. "We are truly in I 106 Harry Turtledove a desperate predicament if King Mezentio offers our best hope of aid." "It is not a good hope," Hajjaj said. "It is, if anything, a very faint hope. Balastro has made it clear Algarve will not anger Unkerlant while the war goes on in the east and south." "A faint hope is better than no hope at all," Shazli said. "Why don't you pay another call on the good marquis today?" Seeing the foreign minister's martyred expression, the king laughed again, this time with something approaching real amusement. "Spending an afternoon in clothes will not be the death of you." "I suppose not, your Majesty," Hajaj replied in a tone that supp anything but. King Shazh laughed again, and gently clapped his hands together to show the meeting with the foreign minister was over. While Hajaj"s secretary spoke on the crystal with the Algarvian ministry to arrange a time for the appointment, Ha~aj himself went through his meager wardrobe. He did have some Algarvian-style tunics and kilts, Just as he kept tunics and trousers - which he truly loathed - for consultations with envoys from jelgava and Valmiera. After donning a blue cotton tunic and a pleated kilt, he examined himself in the mirror. He looked as he had in his student days. No - his clothes looked as they had then. He'd grown old since. But Marquis Balastro would be pleased. Hajaj sighed. "What I do in the service of my kingdom," he muttered. His secretary had set up the meeting with the Algarvian minister for midafternoon. Haij aj was meticulously on time, though the Algarvian set less stock in perfect punctuality than did the folk of Unkerlant or the Kaunian kingdoms. Outside the ministry, clothed and sweating Algarvian guards stood watch, as their Unkerlanter counterparts did outside the residence of King Swernmel's envoy. The Algarvians, though, were any- thing but still and silent as they watched good-looking Zuwayzi women saunter by. They rocked their hips and called lewd suggestions in their own language and in what scraps of Zuwayzi they'd learned. The women kept walking, pretending they hadn't heard. Such public admiration was anything but the style in Zuwayza. Ha~ajj had been shocked the first time he'd heard it when he'd gone off to Algarve for college. It didn't start clan feuds there, though. Algarvian girls giggled and sometimes gave back as good as they got. That had shocked him, too. He was harder to shock these days. And the Algarvian minister's secretary was a polished man by any kingdom's standards. Escorting lic ter's ing INTo THE DARKNESS 107 HajaJ past the guards and into the nuinistry, he murmured in fluent Zuwayzi: "I do beg your pardon, your Excellency, but you know how the soldiers are." "Oh, aye," HaJjaJ answered. "I have learned to make allowances for the foibles of others, and hope others will make allowances for rmine." "What an admirable way to look at things," the foreign minister exclaimed. He ducked into a doorway and returned to his own native tongue: "My lord, the Zuwayzi foreign minister." "Send him in, send him in," Marquis Balastro said. He did not speak Zuwayzi, but, since HaJjaJ knew Algarvian well, they had no trouble talking with each other. Balastro was in his early forties, and wore a little stripe of hair under his lower lip and mustaches waxed till they were as straight and sharply pointed as the horns of a gazelle. Such adornments aside, he had as little of the fop in him as any Algarvian, and was, for a diplomat, forthright. He - or his secretary - also knew not to plunge too abruptly into busi- ness with a Zuwayzi. A tray of cakes and wine appeared as if by magic. Balastro made small talk, waiting for Hajaj to open: another nice courtesy. At length, Hajaj did begin, saying, "Your Excellency, it is surely destructive of good order among the kingdoms of the world when the large can with impunity bully and oppress the small for no better reason than that they are large." "With Algarve so grievously beset, I could hardly fail to admit the principle," Balastro said. "Its application, though, will vary according to circumstances.,, Algarve was hardly a small kingdom. HaJjaJ refrained from saying as much. What he did say was, "As you will have heard from me before, King Swernmel of Unkerlant continues to make unreasonable demands on Zuwayza. Since Algarve, from its own experience, understands such extortion-" Balastro held up a hand. "Your Excellency, let me be plain about this. Algarve is not at war with Unkerlant. King Mezentio does not now desire to make war on King Swernmel. This being so, Algarve cannot reason- ably object to whatever King Swernmel. chooses to do on frontiers distant from her. King Mezentio may privately deplore such deeds, but he will not - I repeat, will not - seek to hinder them. Do I make myself clear?" "You do, ummistakably so." HaJjaJ did his diplomatic best to hold 108 Harry Turtledove disappointment from his voice. Balastro had not been encouraging before. Now he was blunt. Zuwayza would have no help from Algarve. Zuwayza, very probably, would have no help from anyone. Krasta was angry. When she was angry, people around her suffered. That was not how she thought of it, of course. As far as she was con-' cerned, she was making herself feel better. In any case, other people's feelings had never seemed quite real to her, any more than the idea that there could be numbers smaller than zero had. But the master who'd taught ciphering had been so marvelously handsome, she'd pretended to believe it harder than she would have otherwise. Now, though, the noblewoman had no reason to dissemble. Waving a news sheet at Bauska, she cried, "Why do they feed us such lies? Why don't they tell us the truth?" "I don't understand, milady," the servant said. She would not have presumed to read the news sheet before her nuistress saw it. Had she so presumed, she would not have been rash enough to admit it. Krasta waved the news sheet again; Bauska had to leap back hurriedly to keep from getting hit in the face. "They say only that we are advanc- ing in Algarve and moving on the enemy's fortifications. We've been moving on them for weeks. We've been moving on them since this stupid war started. Why haven't we moved past them yet, in the name of the powers above?" "Perhaps they are very strong, milady," Bauska replied. "What are you saying now?" Krasta's eyes sparked furiously. "Are you saying that our brave soldiers - are you saying that my brother, the hero - cannot break through whatever defenses the barbarians throw up against us? Is that what you're saying?" Bauska babbled denials. Krasta listened with only half an ear. Servants always lied. Krasta threw down the news sheet. As far as she was concerned, the war had gone on far too long already. It had grown boring. "I am going into town," she announced. "I shall spend the day in the shops and the cafes. Perhaps - perhaps, rmind you - I shall find something of interest there. Summon the coachmen at once." "Aye, milady." Bauska bowed and humied away. As she went, she muttered something under her breath. It could not possibly have been INTo THE DARKNESS red. ing hy 109 what it sounded like, which was, Out of my hair for a while. Krasta dismissed the possibility from her mind. Bauska would never have dared say such a thing, not where she could hear it. The servant knew what was liable to happen to her if Krasta found her even slightly disrespectful. All the servants at the estate knew. With a low bow, the coachman handed Krasta up into the carriage. "Take me to the Avenue of Equestrians," she said, narming the street with the most shops - and the most expensive shops - in Pn*ekule. "The corner of Little Hills Road will do. I shall expect to see you there again an hour before sunset." "Aye, milady," the coachman said, as Bauska had done before. Some nobles let their servants speak to them in tones of familiarity. Krasta was not one to make that mistake. They were not her equals, they were her inferiors, and she intended that they remember it. have The carriage went swiftly through the streets. Not much traffic was on e so them. Many common folk, Krasta knew, had had their horses and donkeys impressed into the service of the kingdom. The public caravans edly that traveled the ley lines were also far from crowded. Most of the anc- passengers aboard them were women, so many men having been sum- been moned into King Gaimbu's anny. this Like the traffic on its thoroughfares, Pn'ekule seemed a shadow of its e of former self. Many shops and taverns were shuttered. Some of those shut- ters no doubt meant the owners had gone off to war. And some shutters were up because owners wanted to save their expensive glass if Algarvian e you eggs burst in the capital of Valmiera. None had yet. Krasta was serenely hero confident none would. up Workmen were piling sandbags around the base of the Kaumian Column of Victory. Cloth sheathed the carved stone. Krasta giggled, rvants thinking of lamb's-gut sheaths for other columns. A wizard walked e was around the ancient monument, incanting busily. Perhaps he was fire- own proofing the cloth or otherwise sorcerously strengthening it. Valmiera could afford to do that for its treasures. Few nobles and even fewer com- ~n *1Z moners could afford to do it for their private property. me~fiing YWT-StS Snorting, the carriage pulled to a stop. Krasta stepped out on to the Avenue of Equestrians. She did not look back, nor wonder even for went, she a moment what the coachman would do till it was time to retn' eve her. have been As far as she was concerned, he stopped existing when she no longer 110 Harry Turtledove needed him. If he didn't start existing again the moment she required him, he would be sorry. Shops on the Avenue of Equestrians remained open. Clerks fawned on Krasta as she strutted into a jeweler's, a milliner's, a fancy lampseller's. The clerk in a fine tailor's shop did not fawn enough to suit her. She had her revenge: she ran the young girl ragged, trying on every pair of silk and leather and linen trousers in the place. "And which will nulady choose for herself today?" the sweating clerk asked when Krasta reclonned her own trousers at last. "Oh, I do not care to buy today," Krasta answered sweetly. "I wasiust comparing your styles to the ones I saw the other day at the House of Spogi." Out she went, leaving the clerk, slump-shouldered with dejec- tion, staring after her. Setting the commoner in her place immensely improved Krasta's mood. She hurried across the street to the Bronze Woodcock, a cafe she'd always favored. An old waiter with a bushy mustache of almost Algarvian impressiveness was leading her to an empty table by the fire when a man a couple of tables away sprang to his feet and bowed. "Will you join me, Marchioness?" The waiter paused, awaiting Krasta's decision. She smiled. "Of course I will, Viscount Valnu," she replied. With a tiny shrug, the waiter steered her to Valnu's table. The viscount bowed again, this time over her hand. He raised it to his lips, then let it fall. Krasta's smile got wider. "So good to see you, Viscount," she said as she sat down. "And since I hadn't seen you in a while, I thought you must have put on a uniform, as my brother has done." Valnu took a pull at the flagon of porter in front of him. Firelight played off his cheekbones. Depending on how it struck his features, they were either beautifully sculpted or skeletal: sometimes both at once. His blood, Krasta thought, was very fine. With a wry snuile of his own, he said, "I fear the rigors of the field are not for me. I am a creature of Priekule, and could flourish nowhere else. If King Gainibu grows so desperate as to need my martial services, Valnuera shall be in desperate peril indeed." "Porter, milady?" the waiter asked Krasta. "Ale? Wine?" "Ale," she said. "Ale and a poached trout on a bed of saffron rice. "And I will have the smoked sausage with vinegared cabbage," V11nu INTo THE DARKNESS ired declared. "Hearty peasant fare." He himself was neither peasantish nor hearty. As the waiter bowed, he went on, "You need not hurry the meals d on overmuch, my good fellow. The marchioness and I shall amuse ourselves Her's. in the meantime by talking about rank." The waiter bowed again and e had departed. f silk Krasta clapped her hands together. "That is well said!" she cnied. "Truly you are a man of great nobility indeed." clerk "I do my best," Valnu said. "More than that, I cannot do. More than that, no man can do." sjust "So many of the superior class do not even try to come up to such use of standards," Krasta said. "And so many of the lower order these days are ej ec- so grasping and vulgar and rude, they require lessons in the art of dealing with their better." She explained how she had dealt with the clerk in the asta's clothier's establishment. a cafe Valnu's delighted gnin displayed very white, even teeth and made him almost look more like a skull than ever, save only for the glow of admiration in e fire his bright blue eyes. "That is excellent," he said. "Excellent! You could "Will hardly have done better without running her through, and, had you done that, she would not have long appreciated what you'd taught her." course steered r hand. o good I t seen rother irclight es, they ce. His wn, he ture of ows so esperate rice. Valnu "I suppose not," Krasta agreed regretfully, "though that might have left a stronger impression on the rest of the vulgar herd." Valnu clicked his tongue between his teeth several times, shaking his head all the while. "People would talk, my dear. People would talk. And now" - he sipped his porter - "shall we talk?" Talk he and Krasta did: who was sleeping with whom, who was feud- ing with whom (two topics often intimately related), whose farmily was older than whose, who had been caught out while trying to make his family seem older than it was. That was meat and drink to Krasta. She leaned across the small table toward Valnu, so intent and interested that she hardly noticed the waiter bringing them their luncheons. Valnu did not at once attack his sausage and sour cabbage, either. In a sorrowful voice, he said, "And, I hear, Duke Kestu lost his only son and heir in Algarve the other day. When I think of how the Six Years' War cut down so many noble stems, when I think of how likely this war is to do the same ... I fear for the future of our kind, nuilday." "There will always be a nobility." Krasta spoke with automatic confi- dence, as if she had said, There will always be a sunrise in the morning. But 112 Harry Turtledove her farrudy's male line depended on her brother. And Skamu was fighting in Algarve, and he had no heir. She did not care to think about that. To keep from thinking about it, she took a long pull from her flagon of ale and began to eat the trout and nice on the plate before her. "I hope everything goes as well as it can for you and yours, milady," Valmi said quietly. Krasta wished he had not said anything at all. If he had to say something, that was more kindly and less worrisome than most of the other things she could think of He dug into the pungent cabbage and sausage - peasant fare indeed and made them disappear at an astonishing rate. However emaciated he appeared, it was not due to any failure of appetite. Nor, very plainly, was anything wrong with any of his other appetites, either. As Krasta ate, she was startled - but, given some of the things she'd heard about Valnu, not surprised - when, under the table, his hand came down on her leg, well above the knee. She brushed it away as she might have brushed away a crawling insect. "My lord viscount, as you yourself said, people would talk." His answering simile was hard and bright and predatory. "Of course they would, my dear. They always do." The hand returned. "Shall we, then, give them something interesting to talk about?" She considered, letting his hand linger and even stray upwards while she did. He was well-born, and was attractive in a bony way. While he would certainly be unfaithful, he would never pretend to be anything else. In the end, though, she shook her head and took his hand away again. "Not this afternoon. Too many shops I haven't yet visited." "Thrown over for shops! For shops!" Valnu clapped both hands over his heart, as if pierced by a beam from a stick. Then, in an instant, he went from melodrama to pragmatism: "Well, better that than being thrown over for another lover." Krasta laughed. She almost changed her mind. But she still had gold in her handbag, and plenty of shops along the Avenue of Equestrians she hadn't seen. She paid for her luncheon and left the Bronze Woodcock. Valnu blew her a kiss. Skarmi stared in grim dismay at the line of fortresses ahead. Having seen them, the VaIrmieran captain no longer wondered why his superiors hesitated before hurling their army at those works. The Algarvians had INTo THE DARKNESS 113 lavished both ingenuity and gold on them. Whoever tried to smash them down, whoever tried to break through them, would pay dearly. "Come away, Captain," Sergeant Raunu urged. "Like as not, the stinking Algarvians'll put a hole through anybody who takes too long a look. " "Like as not, you're night," Skarnu said, and ducked back down into the barley that helped shield him from unfriendly eyes - and, east of where he crouched, there were no eyes of any other sort. East of where he crouched, too, were very few places to hide. Whatever else rmight happen to it, the Algarvians' defensive line would not fall to surprise attack. "In the last war, we'd throw eggs at forts and then just charge right at e" P id. "Maybe they've learned something since." in, aunu sal 1 1 "If they'd learned anything since, we wouldn't be in a war now, Skarnu answered. The veteran sergeant blinked, then slowly nodded. Off to the north, Valmieran egg-tossers started lobbing destruction at the line of forts. The burst resounded like distant thunder. Skarnu wondered how much damage they were doing. Not so much as he would have liked: he was certain of that. The Algarvians had used stone and earth and cement and iron and bronze to fashion a line of death that ran for many miles north and south and was most of a mile deep. How long would soldiers batter their heads against that line, as Raunu had said, in search of a breakthrough that might not be there at all? Forever? Probably not. Even so, Skarmi sighed as he said, "They built that to dare us to try to go through it, to dare us to spend the men we'd need to get to the other side. They don't think we have the nerve to do it." "I wouldn't be sorry if they were night, either," Raunu said. "Would you rather fight inside Valmiera, the way we did for most of the Six Years' War?" Skarnu returned. "Sir, it's like you said: if you ask me what I'd rather, I'd rather not fight at all," the sergeant said. Skarnu clicked his tongue between his teeth. Sergeant Raunu had indeed used his own words to reply to him, which meant he could hardly take exception to what the veteran said. But he'd seen that a good many of the common soldiers had little stomach for the fight against Algarve in general, and even less for the assault on the forts. He said, "We should 11 114 Harry Turtledove have pushed harder, so we would have been through this line before,the Forthwegians collapsed." "Aye, I see what you're saying, sir, but I don't know how much dif~- ference that would have made." Raunu pointed ahead. "Doesn't look like the cursed redheads have put any new men in their lines, even if they don't have to worry about their western front any more." "They don't have to worry about Forthweg any more," Skarmi cor- rected. "Now they're face to face with Unkerlant. If they're not worried about that, they're fools." "Of course they're fools. They're Algarvians." Raunu spoke with an automatic scorn Skarnu's sister Krasta might have envied. But then, as Krasta would never have done, he changed course slightly: "They're fools most ways, I mean. They make good soldiers, whatever else you say about'em." "I wish I could tell you you were wrong," Skamu said. "Our lives would be easier." The Algarvians had resisted the Valmieran advance to the fortified line with only light forces, but they'd fought stubbornly. They'd also fought skillfully, perhaps more skillfully than the men he commanded. Had there been more of them, he wondered if his men would have been able to advance at all. Along with most of his other worries, he kept that one to himself. A runner came up to him. "My lord marquis?" the fellow asked. "Aye?" Skarmi said in some small surprise. Far more often these days, he was addressed by his military rank, not title. After a moment, a pos- sible reason for this exception came to mind. And, sure enough, the runner said, "My lord, his Grace the Duke of Klaipeda bids you sup with him and with some of the other leading officers of our triumphant army at his headquarters this evening. The sup- per shall begin an hour past sunset." "Please tell his Grace I am honored, and of course I shall attend him," Skarnu answered. The runner bowed and hurried away. Raunu eyed Skarnu. He'd understood Skarnu was a noble, of course. That was one thing. An invitation extended to a captain to sup with the commander of an army of tens of thousands was something else again. Almost defensively, Skarnu said, "I went to school with his Grace's son. "Did you, sir?" the sergeant said. "Well, you'll get a good meal out of N the or- ed say men other days, pos- e of ading e sup- him, ourse. ith the again. race s out of INTo THE DARKNESS 115 it, and that's the truth. I will say, though, sir, the men think well of you for eating out of the same pot they use." "It's the best way I could think of to make sure they got decent food," Skarnu said. "Nobody cares when a common soldier fusses and com- plains. When a captain grumbles, though, people start to notice." "Aye, sir," Raunu said, "especially when he's a captain who went to school with the Duke of Klaipeda's son." More than half to himself, he added, "It's a wonder you're just a captain and not a colonel." Skarmi wished he hadn't had to mention his connection with the duke, whose son, while not the depraved little monster so beloved of romancers without much imagination, had been one of the most boring youths he'd ever met. He also wished the duke were paying more atten- tion to the commanders who would lead great parts of the Valmieran army into battle and less to his son's social connections. But, regardless of the duke's shortcorruings, Skarnu spruced himself up and made his way back toward the village of Bonorva. The village was a good deal more battered than it had been when he'd first seen it from the woods that now lay on the far side from the front. The duke had taken up residence in one of the larger houses there. It still looked scarred and abused: no point cleaning it up and offering the Algarvians a target. Skamu chuckled as he drew near. After he wrote to Krasta, she'd be sick with jealousy at the exalted company he was keeping. When he went inside the unprepossessing building, Skarmi might have been transported to another world, the world in which the Valmieran nobility had idled away its time in Priekule and on estates out in the provinces. Lights blazed; dark cloth over the windows and behind the door kept it from leaking out and drawing the notice of Algarvian dragons overhead or the cunning snoops who kept trying to spy targets for the enemy's egg-tossers. Marstalu, the Duke of Klaipeda, stood just inside the door-way greet- ing new arrivals. He was a portly man in his late fifties, his complexion very pink, his hair gone white as snow: he looked like everyone's favorite grandfather. His uniform put Skarnu in rmind of those the Kaunian Emperors had won. So did the brilliant constellation of medals - some gold, some silver, some bejeweled, some with ribbons like comets' tails - spangling his chest. Skarnu bowed low, murmuring, "Your Grace." 11 116 Harry Turtledove "Good to see you, lad. Good to see you," the duke said, beaming in a grandfatherly way. "Make yourself at home. Plenty of good things to eat and drink here - better than you'll find at the front, that's certain." "No doubt, sir." Skarmi felt out of place here despite Marstalu's friendly words. Most of the other noble officers present glittered hardly less than their commanders. Skarmi's unadorned uniform made him look and feel like a servant. It also made him feel like a real soldier in amongst a flock of popinjays. Perhaps that was what made him ask, "Sir, when will the attack against the Algarvian works go in?" "When all is in readiness," Marstalu answered easily. That might mean anything. It imight mean nothing. Skarnu suspected it meant nothing here. The duke went on, "Perhaps we could be more zealous now had we reached this position before the Algarvians finished their dismantling of Forthweg." Skarnu didn't know what to say to that. Marstalu was saying the same thing he had to Raunu. Raunu hadn't thought it would make a difference. Skarnu had to hope the sergeant was right and he and the commander of the army wrong. But, had the Duke of Klaipeda wanted to reach the fortified belt before Forthweg collapsed, he should have pushed harder. He could have. Of course, he couldn't have known Algarve's attack would shatter Forthweg, but everything Skamu had ever soaked up about the nulitary art suggested that wasting time was never a good idea. Pushing Marstalu further would accomplish nothing but getting him on the commander's black list. He could see as much at a glance. That being so, what better choice than enjoying the choice viands and potables set out on the tables before him? He sat down between a pair of bemedaled colonels. One of them jabbed a serving fork into the large, savory bird lying on a tray in front of him. juices spurted. "Have some, Captain," he said. "As you can see, we've finally gone and cooked Algarve's goose." The colonel on the other side of Skarnu laughed so uproariously at that sally, Skarnu was convinced he'd already emptied the crystal goblet before him several times. Lifting his own wine goblet, Skarnu said, "May we serve the king as we have served the goose." "Oh, well said, young fellow, well said," both colonels exclaimed in the same breath. They drank. So did Skamu. He carved off a thick slice of I in a t mean othing w had ntling e same ake a nd the anted d have known ad ever never a ng him e. That otables pair of e large, e some, cooked at that I goblet d, "May ed in the slice of INTo THE DARKNESS 117 goose, then spooned a good helping of parsmips seethed in cream and dotted with butter on to his plate. The salad was of fine lettuces and chopped scallions dressed with wine vinegar and walnut oil. One of the colonels boasted about the speed of the fine horses he had liberated from an Algarvian noble's stables. The other boasted about the agility of the fine mistress he had liberated from an Algarvian noble's bed- chamber. Skarnu tried to boast about the fighting qualities of the men in his company. Neither colonel seemed the least bit interested. They were fascinated with each other's brags, though. Sometimes it was hard to ten which one was talking about his new acquisition. Gloom settled over Skarrm like a winter fog in Priekule. King Gainibu had been more interested in starting the war against Algarve than his officers were in fighting it. They'd taken what the Algarvians, were win- ing to yield. Now that the Algarvians had yielded everything up to their long-established defensive line, they weren't going to be willing to yield any more. And going up against that line was, ever more plainly, the last thing any Valimeran commander wanted to do. One of the boastful colonels upended his goblet once too often. He set his head down on the table and started to snore. Skarmi felt like getting that drunk, too. "y not? he thought. Raunu runs the companyjust as well when I'm not there. In the end, though, he refrained. He started to make his way over to the Duke of Klaipeda to say his farewells, but Marstalu seemed far gone in wine himself Skarnu slipped out into the cool, dark night and headed east toward his company. All things considered, he would rather not have been invited to the feast. He'd hoped for reassurance. What he'd got was more to worry about. Fernao strolled through the streets of Setubal, delighting in the life that brawled around him. The capital of Lagoas had long been the most cos- mopolitan city in the world. Now, the mage thought sadly, it was, as near as made no difference, the only cosmopolitan city left in the world. Lagoas was not at war with anyone. That made the island kingdom unique among the major powers. Oh, Unkerlant was not at war with anyone at the moment, but Fernao, along with everyone else, assumed that was only because King Swemmel, having helped himself to a large chunk of Forthweg, was looking around for his next neighbor to assault. Zuwayza affronted him merely by existing, as Forthweg had, but Yanina had taken in King Penda when he fled Eoforwic. One of them would go under soon. Maybe both of them would go under soon. Fernao guessed Yanina would go first. But Lagoas, with any luck at all, could stay neutral through the whole mad war. Fernao hoped his kingdom could. Monuments in Setubal's many parks and at street corners warned of wars past: recent monuments to the fight against Algarve in the Six Years' War, older ones to war against Valmiera, older ones still to wars against Kuusamo and the pirates of Sibiu who were all the rage in Lagoan romances these days, even a couple of Kaunian columns from the days before the Empire brought its armies back home to the mainland of Derlavai. What sort of monument rmight a kingdom erect to a war in which it hadn't fought? Fernao visualized a marble statue, three times life size, of a man swiping the back of his hand across his forehead in relief. After a moment, he realized the man he'd visualized looked a lot like him. He laughed at that. He'd known he was vain. Maybe he hadn't known how vain he was. 118 INTo THE DARKNESS r a C ow k He turned into a tavern (a good piece of magecraft, that, he thought, now with a laugh that was more like a snort) and ordered a glass of jelgavan red wine. When the taverner gave it to him, he took it over to a small table by the wall and sipped in leisurely fashion. The taverner gave him a sour look, as he might have done with any man likely to occupy space without bringing in much business. Plenty of other people were drinking more than Fernao: Lagoans, slant- eyed Kuusamans, Vahnierans in trousers, Sibians, even a few Algarvians who'd managed to run their foes' blockade. The mage wondered what sort of shady deals they were cooking up. Since everyone could come to Setubal, anything was liable to happen here. He knew that very wen. Along with noting the conversation hurrirmng around him, he listened with a different part of his being to the power humming through Setubal. There were more power points in a smaller space here than anywhere else in the world; more ley lines converged on the Lagoan capital than on any other city. In a mage's veins, the song of that power sometimes seemed stronger than his pulse. A man slid down on to the ladderbacked chair across the table from Fernao. "Mind if I Join you?" he asked with a friendly smile. "It's all right," Fernao answered. He would sooner have been alone with his thoughts, but the tavern was crowded. He lifted his wineglass. "Your good health." "I thank you, sir. And yours." The stranger lifted his mug in return. Steam and a sweet, spicy smell rose from it: hot mulled cider in there, unless Femao's nose had lost its cleverness. The stranger sipped, then nodded with the air of a connoisseur. "Powers above, that's good," he said. Fernao nodded, politely but without intending to encourage further conversation. But, as he drank a little more wine, he could not help start- ing to size up the man across from him. And, once he'd started, he found he couldn't stop. The fellow spoke unaccented Lagoan, but he didn't look like a native of King Vitor's domain. Lagoans were more various in their appearance than the folk of many kingdoms - Ferriao's slanted eyes said as much - but very few were dark and stocky and heavily bearded. Even fewer wore trousers. That was a Kaunian fashion no kingdom sprung from Algarvic stock had ever adopted. Taken all in all, the stranger might have been put together out of pieces from three or four different puzzles. 120 Harry Turtledove He also noticed Fernao scrutinizing him, which he wasn't supposed to do. He smiled again, a surprisingly charming smile from a man less than handsome. After another sip at his hot cider, he said, "Am I correct in understanding, sir, that you are more than a little skilled at getting into and out of places where others might possibly not want to go?" A trip into Feltre despite the anger of the Sibian Navy qualified Fernao to answer aye. He did nothing of the sort, instead saying, "You are cor- rect in understanding, sit, that my business is my business - and no one else's unless I choose to make it so." The fellow across the table from him laughed gaily, as if he'd said something very funny. Femao knocked back his wine - the taverner, no doubt, would be pleased - and started to get to his feet. Where nothing else had, that made the stranger lose his too-easy smile. "Please, sit, don't go yet," he said in a voice that, despite its polite tones, held iron under- neath. His right hand rested, broad palm down, on the tabletop. He m ight have had some sort of weapon - a cut-down stick, perhaps a knife - under it. But when he lifted it, taking care that Femao and no one else could see what he did, he revealed not a weapon but the sparkle of gold. Femao sat back down. "You have engaged my attention, at least for the time being. Say on, sir." "I thought that might do the trick," the stranger said complacently. "You Lagoans have the name of being a mercenary folk. That you trade with both sides during the current unpleasantness does nothing to detract from it." "That we trade with both sides shows a certain common sense, in my view," Fernao said. "That you sneer at my people does nothing to attract me to you. And, if we are to continue this discussion, give me a name to call you. I do not deal with nameless men." Unless I have no choice, he thought but did not say aloud. Here, though, the choice was his. "Names have power," the man across the table from him observed. "Names especially have power in the mouth of a mage. But you may caH me Shelomith, if you must stick a handle on me as if I were a hot pot." "If whatever notion you have in mind could not bum me, you would have approached me in a different way," Fernao said. And Shelomith was not the name with which the stranger had been born. It sounded like one the barbarous Ice People used. Whatever blood ran in Shelornith's veins, INTo THE DARKNESS 121 it was not from that stock. Fernao went on, "You have shown me gold. I presume you have in mind paying me some. How do you expect me to earn it?" "This for listening," Shelomith said, and shoved the coin he had con- cealed across to the mage. It showed the fuzzy-bearded king of Gyongyos, whose image was bordered by an inscription in dernotic Gyongyosian script, which Fernac, recognized but could not read. He did not think the coin's origin said anything about what Shelomith had in mind. Gold cir- culated freely all across the world, and a crafty man could use it to conceal rather than to reveal. As if to point in that same direction, Shelomith spoke again: "For listening - and for your discretion." "Discretion goes only so far," Fernao said. "If you ask me to betray my king or my kingdom, I wiU do nothing of the sort. I will shout for a constable instead." He wondered if Shelomith would find urgent business elsewhere on hearing that. The stranger only shrugged wide shoulders. "Nothing of the sort," he said in reassuring tones. Of course, he would have said the same thing had he been lying. He went on, "You may remain apart from the proposal I shall put to you, but it could not offend even the most delicate sensibility." "Such a statement is all the better for proof," Ferriao said. "Tell me plainly what you want from me. I will tell you if you may have it and, if so, at what price." Shelomith looked pained. Fernao got the idea that asking him to speak plainly was like asking the Falls of Leixoes to flow uphill. At last, after another long pull at his cider, he said, as he had before, "You are, are you not, good at getting into and out of tight places?" "This is where we began." The mage made as if to get up again, this time with the goldpiece in the pouch on his belt. "Good morning." As he'd more than half expected, another goldpiece appeared under Shelomith's palm. Fernao kept rising. "Good my sit," Shelomith said plaintively. "Only sit, and be patient, and all will be made clear." Fernao sat. The stranger passed him the second goldpiece. He made it disappear: a good, profitable morning. Shelomith looked even more pained. "Are you always so difficult?" "I make a point of it," Fernao said. "Are you always so obscure?" Shelomith muttered under his breath. To Fernao's disappointment, he 10 r- ne aid no ing n't er- ght else old. t for ntly. trade tract n my tract me to ce, he erved. call pot." would ith was ke one veins, I I 0 122 Harry Turtledove could not make out which language the stranger used when angry. He sat quietly and waited. Maybe Shelomith would feed him still more gold for doing nothing. Instead, with the air of a man yielding himself up to a dentist, Shelomith said, "Does it not wring your heart to see a crowned king trapped in exile far from his native land?" "Ali," Fernao said. "Sits the wind so? Well, a question for a question: don't you think King Penda is a lot happier sitting in exile in Yanina than he would be had the Algarvians or Unkerlanters caught him in Forthweg?" "You are as clever as I hoped," Shelomith said, slapping on the flattery with a broad brush. Fernao would have been naYve to fail to get his drift. "The answer to your question is aye, but only to a degree. He is not only in exile; he might as well be in prison. King Tsavellas holds him close, so he can yield him up to King Swemmel if the Unkerlanter's pressure grows too great." "Ah," Fernao repeated. He fell into slow, sonorous Forthwegian: "And you want him taken beyond King Swemmel's reach." "Even so," Shelomith answered in the same language. "Having a mage with us will make us more likely to succeed. Having a Lagoan mage with us will make it less likely that King Swenimel can take reprisal against him." "A distinct point, from all I have'heard of King Swemmel," Fernao said. "The next question is, what makes you think I am the Lagoan mage you want?" "You have gone into Algarve in time of war, why should you not go into Yanina in time of peace? You are a mage of the first rank, so you will have the strength to do whatever may be needed. You speak Forthwegian, as you have shown. I would be lying if I said you were the only mage at whom we are looking, but you are the man we would like to have." His friends were probably saying the same thing to the other candi- dates. As soon as someone was rash enough to say aye, they would lose, interest in the others. Fernao wondered if he was rash enough to say aye. He'd never been to Yanina. Getting there would be easy enough, if King Swernmel didn't invade; the small kingdom between Algarve and Unkerlant remained nervously neutral. Getting out - especially getting out with King Penda - was liable to be something else again. INTo THE DARKNESS Of course, Shelomith was liable not to care whether Fernao got out or not, so long as Penda did. That might make life interesting in several unpleasant ways. A sensible man would pocket the two Gyongyosian goldpieces and go about his business. "When do we sail?" Fernao asked. Marshal Rathar endured the search to which King Swernmel's body- guards subjected him with less aplomb than he usually showed. He had not conceived so high an opinion of himself as to think he was above searching. But he did begrudge the time he had to waste before being admitted to his sovereign's presence. Once he'd got past the guards, he also begrudged the time he had to spend knocking his head against the carpet before the king. Ceremony was all very well in its place; it reminded people what a great and mighty sovereign ruled them. Rathar, though, already knew that wen. Wasting time on ceremony, then, struck him as inefficient. King Swemmel saw things otherwise. As always, how King Swernmel saw things prevailed in Unkerlant. Having at last been granted perrilission to rise, Rathar said, "May it please your Majesty, I am come at your command." "It pleases us very little," Swernmel replied in his light, rather petulant voice. "We are beset by enemies on all sides. One by one, for Unkerlant's greater glory and for our own safety, we must be rid of them." He quivered a little on his high seat. He was quite capable of deciding on the spur of the moment that Rathar was an enemy and ordering his head stricken from his body. A lot of officers, some of high rank, had died that way during the Twinkings War. A lot more had died that way since. If he decided that, he would be wrong, but it would do Rathar no good. Showing fear would do Rathar no good, either. It might make Swemmel decide he had reason to be afraid. The marshal said, "Point me atyour foes, your Majesty, and I will bring them down. I am your hawk." "We have too many foes," Swemmel said. "Gyongyos in the far west-" "We are, for the moment, at peace with Gyongyos," Rathar said. Swemmel went on as if he had not spoken: "Algarve " Now Rathar interrupted with more than a little alarm, saying, "Your Majesty, King Mezentio's men have been most scrupulous in observing I 124 Harry Turtledove the border between their kingdom and ours that existed before the start of the Six Years' War. They are as happy to see Forthweg gone from the map again as we are. They want no trouble with us; they have their hands full in the east." He needed a moment to decipher King Swernmel's expression. It was a curious blend of amusement and pity, the sort of expression Rathar might have used had his ten-year-old son come out with some very naYve view of the way the world worked. Swernmel said, "They will attack us. Sooner or later, they will surely attack us - if we give them the chance." If King Swemmel wanted to go to war with one of his small, weak neighbors, that was one thing. If he wanted to go to war with Algarve, that was something else again. Urgently, Rathar said, "Your Majesty, our armies are not yet ready to fight King Mezentio's. The way the Algarvians used dragons and behemoths to open the path for their foot in Forthweg is something new on the face of the world. We need to learn to defend against it, if we can. We need to learn to irmitate it, too. Until we do those things, which I have already set in motion, we should not engage Algarve." He waited for King Swernmel to order him to hurl the annies of Unkerlant against King Mezentio in spite of what he had said, in which case he would do his best. He also waited for his sovereign to curse him for having failed to invent the new way of fighting himself. Swernmel did neither. He merely continued with his catalogue of grievances: "King Tsavellas casts defiance in our face, refusing to yield up to us the person of Penda, who pretended to be king of Forthweg." Swernmel had recognized Penda as king of Forthweg until Algarvian and Unkerlanter arrm'es made Penda flee his falling kingdom. That was not the point at the heart of the matter, though. Rathar said, "If we invade Yanina, your Majesty, we collide with Algarve again. I would sooner use Yanina as a shield, to keep Algarve from colliding with us." "We never forget insults. Never," Swemmel said. Rathar hoped he was talking about Tsavellas. After a moment, Swernmel went on, "Atid there is Zuwayza. The Zuwayzi provocations against us are intolerable." Rathar knew perfectly well that Unkerlant was the kingdom doing the provoking. He wondered whether Swernmel knew it, too, or whether his sovereign truly believed himself the aggrieved party. You never could tell with Swernmel. Rathar said, "The Zuwayzin do indeed grow over- Ot an as INTo THE DARKNESS 125 bold." If he could steer the king away from launching an attack on Yanina, he would. He could, which he reckoned hardly less a miracle than those a first- rank mage could sometimes produce. King Swernmel said, "The time has come to settle Zuwayza, so that Shazli may no longer threaten us." As he refused to accord Penda the royal title, so he also did with Shazli. He "P went on, eady the army to fall upon Zuwayza at my order." "It is merely a matter of transporting troops and beasts and equipment to the frontier, your Majesty," Rathar said with relief "We have planned this campaign for some time, and shall be able to unleash our warriors whenever you should command - provided," he added hastily, "that you give us time enough to deploy fully before commencing.,, "You can do this and still leave a large enough force in reclaimed Forthweg to guard against Algarvian treachery?" Swernmel demanded. "We can," Rathar said. Unkerlanter officers had been planning for war against Zuwayza since the day Swernmel drove Kyot's forces out of Cottbus. Some of those plans involved fighting Zuwayza while holding the line against Algarve in the east. It was just a matter of pulling the right sheet of orders from the file, adapting them to the precise circumstances, and issuing them. "How soon can we begin to punish the desert-dwellers?" Swemmel asked. Before answering, Rathar reviewed in his mind the man he was like- liest to use. "Not so many ley lines leading up toward Zuwayza as we would like, your Majesty," he said. "Not many through the desert lead- ing toward Bishah, either. If we hadn't already established supply caches up there, we'd be a good while preparing. As things are ... We can move in three weeks, I would say." In practice, it would take rather longer, as such things had a way of doing, but he was sure he would be able to keep King Swernmel from actually ordering the assault till everything was ready. But, as he'd thought only a few minutes before, you never could ten with Swernmel. The king screwed up his face till he looked like an infant about to throw a tantrum. "We cannot wait that long!" he shouted. "We will not wait that long! We have been waiting for twenty years!" Rathar spoke in what he thought to be the voice of reason: "If you have been waiting so long, your Majesty, would you not be wise in I 126 Harry Turtledove waiting just a little longer, to make sure everything goes forward as it should?" "If you show yourself a disobedient servant, Marshal, we shall find another to wield the righteous sword of Unkerlant," Swernmel said in a deadly voice. "It is our will that our army redeem the land the Zuwayzin stole from us beginning no later than ten days hence." If someone else suddenly became Marshal of Unkerlant, he would make a worse hash of the war against Zuwayza, and of any later wars, than P,athar would himself Rathar knew the men likeliest to replace him if he fell, and knew without false modesty that he was abler than any of them. Not only that, but he had his hands on the reins and knew exactly how to guide the horse. Anyone else would need a while to figure out how to do whatever needed doing. All that went through Pathar's mind before he worried about his own extinction. He was not sure his wife would miss him; they spent little time together these days. His oldest son was a Junior officer. His fall would injure the lad's career - or Swernmel might decide to destroy the whole family, to make sure no trouble arose later. Steadily, even stolidly, Rathar asked, "Would you throw away twenty years of waiting, your Majesty, because you cannot bear to wait twenty days?" Swernmel's chin was hardly the more prepossessing Rathar had ever seen. Nonetheless, the king stuck it out. "We shall not wait even an instant longer. Will you or will you not launch the assault in ten days' time, Marshal?" 11 If we strike too soon, without all our regiments in their proper places, the Zuwayzin win be far better able to resist," Rathar said. King Swernmel's eyes bored into his. Rathar dropped his own eyes, staring down at the green carpet on which he stood. Nevertheless, he felt the king's gaze like a physical weight, a heavy, heavy weight. Swemmel said, "We would not have so much patience with many men, Marshal. Do you obey us?" "Your Majesty, I obey you," Rathar said. Obeying Swernmel would cost lives. Odds were, it would cost lives by the thousands. Unkerlant had lives to spend. Zuwayza did not. It was as simple as that. And with Rathar in command, the king's willfulness would not cost so many lives as it would under some other commander. So he told so INTo THE DARKNEss 127 himself, at any rate, salving his conscience as best he could. When he looked up at Swernmel again, the king was relaxed, or as relaxed as his tightly wound spirit ever let him be. "Go, then," he said. "Go and ready the army, to hurl it against the Zuwayzin at our com- mand. We shall publish to the world the indignities Shazli and his burnt- skinned, naked minions have conirmitted against our kingdom. No one will lift a finger to aid them." "I should think not," Rathar said. With the rest of the world embroiled in war, who would even grieve over one small, distant kingdom? "Go, then," Swernmel repeated. "You have shown yourself to be a good leader of men, Marshal, and the armies you commanded did all we expected and all we had hoped in taking back Forthweg. Otherwise, your insolence here would not go unpunished. Next time, regardless of cir- cumstances, it shall not go unpunished. Do you understand?" "I am your servant, your Majesty," Rathar said, bowing low. "You have commanded; I shall obey. All I wanted was to be certain you fully grasped the choice you are making." "Every man, woman, and child in Unkerlant is our servant," King Swemmel said indifferently. "A marshal's blade makes you no different from the rest. And we make our own choices for our own reasons. We need no one to confuse our mind, especially when we did not seek your views on this matter. Do you understand that?" "Aye, your Majesty." Rathar's face showed nothing of what he thought. So far as he could, his face showed nothing at all. Around King Swemmel, that was safest. "Then get out!" Swernmel shouted. Rathar prostrated himself again. When he rose to retreat from the king's chamber, he did so without turning around, lest his back offend his sovereign. In the antechamber, he buckled on his ceremonial sword once more. A guard matter-of-factly got between him and the doorway through which he'd come, to make sure he could not attack the king. Sometimes the idea was tempting, though Rathar did not let his face show that, either. He went off to do his best to get the army ready to invade Zuwayza at King Swemmel's impossible deadline. His aides exclaimed in dismay. Normally as calm a man as any ever born, Rathar screamed at them. After 128 Harry Turtledove his audience with Swernmel, that made him feel a little better, but not much. Tealdo liked being stationed in the Duchy of Banijust fine, even if, as a man from the north, he found oncoming autumn in this part of Algarve on the chilly side. The folk of the Duchy remained thrilled to be united with their countrymen, from whom old Duke Alardo had done his best to sunder them. And a gratifying number of girls in the Duchy remained thrilled to unite with Algarvian soldiers. "Why shouldn't they?" Tealdo's friend Trasone said when he remarked on that. "It's their patriotic duty, isn't it?" "If I ever told a wench it was her patriotic duty to lay me, she'd figure it was her patriotic duty to smack me in the head," Tealdo said, which made Trasone laugh. Tealdo went on, "The other thing I like about being here is that I'm not blazing away at the Valmierans or the jelgavans - and they're not blazing away at me. 11 Trasone laughed again, a big bass rumble that suited his burly frame. "Well, I won't argue with that. Powers above, I can't argue with that. But sooner or later we'll have to do some blazing, and when we do it's liable to be worse than facing either one of the stinking Kaunian kingdoms. " "Sooner or later will take care of itself," Tealdo said. "For now, nobody's blazing at me, and that's just fine." He strode out of the barracks, which were made of pine timber so new, they still smelled strongly of resinous sap. Off in the distance, waves from the Narrow Sea slapped against the stone breakwater that shielded the harbor of Imola from winter storms. Endless streams of birds flew past overhead, all of them going north. Already they were fleeing the brief summer of the land of the Ice People. Soon, very soon, they would be fleeing the Duchy of Bari, too, bound for warmer climes. Some would stop in northern Algarve and jelgava; some would cross the Garelian Ocean and winter in tropic Siaulia, which hardly knew the meaning of the word. Above the twittering flocks, dragons whirled in lazy - no, in lazy- looking - circles. Tealdo looked south, toward the sea and toward Sibiu. More dragons circled over the sea. Tealdo resented the dragonfliers less than he had when he was marching into the Duchy. They kept the Sibs ed he ans nian ow, r so aves elded past brief d be ould relian ing of lazy- Sibiu. rs less e Sibs INTo THE DARKNESS 129 from dropping eggs on his head. He heartily approved of that. They also kept the enemy's dragons from peering down on him and his comrades. He approved of that, too. A trumpeter on the parade ground in front of the barracks blew a sprightly flourish: the call to assembly. Tealdo dashed for his place. Behind him, men poured from the barracks as if from a bawdy house the constables were raiding. He took his assigned place in the ranks of the regiment ahead of almost everyone else. That gave him half a minute to brush a few specks of dust from his kilt, to slide his boots along his socks, and to adjust his broad-brimmed hat to the proper jaunty angle before Sergeant Panfilo started prowling. Prowl Panfilo did. He favored Tealdo with a glare sergeants surely had to practice in front of a reflecting glass. Tealdo looked back imper- turbably. Panfilo reached out and slapped away some dust he'd missed - or perhaps slapped at nothing at all, to keep Tealdo from thinking he had the world by the tail. Sergeants did things like that. "King Mezentic, doesn't want slobs in his army," Panfilo growled. "Told you so himself, did he?" Tealdo asked innocently. But Panfilo got the last word: "That he did, in his regulations, and I'll thank you to remember it." He stalked off to make some other common soldier's life less joyous than it had been. Colonel Ombruno swaggered out to the front of the regiment. "Well, my pirates, my cutthroats, my old-fashioned robbers and burglars," he called with a grin, "how wags your world today?" "We are well, sit," Tealdo shouted along with the rest of the men. "Diddling enough of the pretty girls around these parts?" Ombruno asked. "Aye!" the men shouted, Tealdo again loud among them. He knew Ombruno chased - and caught - the Barian women as frequently as he had farther north in Algarve. "That's good; that's good." The regimental commander rocked back on his heels, then forward once more. "No diddling for now, though, except that we're going to figure out how to diddle our enemies. Go load your packs, grab your sticks, and report back here in ten rminutes. Dismissed!" This time, Tealdo groaned. He knew what they would be doing for the rest of the day: the same thing they'd been doing most of the days 130 Harry Turtledove since they'd established themselves by Imola. Unless it involved a pretty girl, he soon got sick of doing the same thing over and over. He realized that, when the time for fighting came, all this practice was liable to help keep him alive. That didn't, that couldn't, make him enjoy it while it was going on. His pack sat at the foot of his cot, in precisely the prescribed place. His stick leaned against the wall at the left side of the bed, at precisely the pre- scribed angle. Panfilo hadn't been able to find a thing to complain about in the way he handled his gear, If Panfilo couldn't find it, it wasn't there. Tealdo slung the pack over his shoulder, grunting at its weight. When he picked up the stick, his finger accidentally slid into the blazing hole. It didn't matter here, not directly: in training, well away from any fighting front, none of the weapons carried a sorcerous charge. But it was not a good habit to acquire. He wasn't one of the first men back out to the parade ground. But he wasn't one of the last men out, either, the men at whom his superiors screamed. He enjoyed people screaming at him no more than he enjoyed endless practice. Practice he couldn't escape. He could keep people from screaming at him, could and did. "Form by companies!" Colonel Ombruno shouted: a useless order, since the regiment always formed by companies. "Form by companies, and report to your designated practice locations." The company commanders shepherded the men off to their own areas. Soon, when a new practice field combined all those areas, they would work together. In the meanwhile ... In the meanwhile, the company commanders got to puff out their chests and strut, like so many pigeons trying to impress mates. Captain Larbino's strut and his shouted orders did not impress Tealdo: he was no dimwitted female pigeon. But he had to obey, which a female pigeon did not. Larbino led his company to a cramped underground chamber that ha two stairways leading down into it, one broad, the other narrow. The men entered the chamber by the broad stairway. Only a few lantem~s, stinking of fish oil, cast a dim, flickering glow there. "Powers above, it's like failing back through a thousand years of time," Tealdo muttered. "Take your places!" Larbino's loud voice dinned in the small, crowded chamber. "Five minutes till the exercise begins! Take your places! No mercy on any man who's out of place when the whistle blows." is re- out re. hen e. It ting ot a t he nors rder, nies, areas. ould chests at had . The terns, e, it's ed. wded es! No INTo THE DARKNESS 131 The soldiers were already taking their places. They had been doing this for three weeks. They knew, or were convinced they knew, at least as much about their part of the operation as did Larbino. They formed a single serpentine line that led to the bottom of the narrow stairway and kinked at each earthen wall. Seen from above, it would have looked like a long string of gut twisted to fit into the abdorminal cavity. Shrill and deafeningly loud, the brass whistle screeched. "I love run- ning in full kit," Trasone said through the blast, and then, in a lower voice, "In a pig's arse I do." Tealdo chuckled. He felt the same way. "Out! Out! Out!" Larbino was screaming. "They'll be blazing at you when you do this for real! Don't stand around playing with yourselves." "I'd rather be playing with myself than doing this," Tealdo said. He didn't think anyone heard him. The line was uncoiling rapidly as soldier after soldier dashed up the narrow stairs. They'd had dreadful tangles the first few times they tried it. They'd got better with practice. Tealdo declined to adnu't that, even to himself His feet thudded on the timbers of the narrow stairway. Up he went. Anyone who tnipped here was a cork in the bottle for everyone behind him. Panfilo had a more expressive term for it: as far as he was concerned, anyone who tnipped on the narrow stairway was a dead man. Tealdo emerged into daylight. Before long, they'd be running the exercise at night, which would make it even more delightful. He dashed to a broad plank that spanned a deep trench and raced across it. Two men from his company had fallen into the trench. One managed to escape without being hurt. The other broke his leg. Cloth flags on stakes marked the narrow way he and his comrades had to take. He rushed along that narrow way till it suddenly widened out. Where it did, buildings - or rather, false fronts - defined streets through which they had to run. Soldiers with uncharged sticks "fought" from those false fronts, trying to impede the company's progress. Umpires with green ribbons tied to their tunic sleeves signaled theoretical casualties. Tealdo "blazed" back at the defenders. One after another, the umpires ruled them deceased. But Tealdo's comrades were taken out of action, too. He rather hoped he would be, as had happened during a couple of practice runs. Then he could lie down and grab a breather, and no sergeant would be able to complain. But, at the umpires' whim, he was allowed to survive. Panting, he 132 Harry Turtledove raced left, right, and then left again before coming to the gateway for whose capture his company was responsible. More soldiers tried to keep the company from seizing the gate. The umpires ruled those soldiers failed and fell. The egg one of Captain Larbino's soldiers set against the gateway was only a wooden simulacrum. An umpire's whistle blew, signaling a blast of energy. A couple of defenders, nuiraculously revived from their "deaths", opened the gate to let the "survivors" of the company inside. More narrow ways lay beyond, some as twisted as the paths in a maze. Still more soldiers tried to keep Tealdo and his comrades from passing those ways to the end. Again, they failed. More whistles shrilled. Tealdo raised a weary cheer. He and enough of the other soldiers had reached the end of the practice area to have succeeded were this actual battle. "King Mezentio and all of Algarve will have reason to be proud of you when you fight this well with your lives truly in the pans of the scale," Larbinc, declared. "I know you will. You need no lessons in courage, only in how best to use that courage. Those lessons will go on. Tomorrow, we will take the practice course in the dark." Weary groans replaced the weary cheers. Tealdo turned and saw Trasone not far away. "Marching into Bari was a lot more fun," he said. "All this running around looks too much like work to me." "It'll look even more like work when the bastards on the other side start blazing back for real," Trasone answered. "Don't remind me," Tealdo said with a grimace. "Don't remind me." Leofsig felt like a beast of burden, or perhaps an animal in a cage. He was not a Forthwegian soldier any more, the Forthwegian army having been crushed between those of Algarve and Unkerlant. Not a foot of Forthwegian soil remained under the control of men loyal to King Penda. From east and west, the enemies' forces had Joined hands east of Eoforwic; joined hands over Forthweg's fallen corpse. And so Leofsig languished with thousands of his comrades in x captives' camp somewhere between Gromheort and Eoforwic, not far from where his regiment, or what was left of it, had finally surrendered to the Algarvians. He scowled when he thought of the dapper Algarvian officer who'd inspected the dirty, worn, beaten Forthwegian soldiers still hale enough to line up for the surrender ceremony. INTo THE DARKNESS side e. . He ng ot of nda. st of in a ot far dered arvian Idiers 133 "You fought well. You fought bravely," the Algarvian officer had said, trilling the slow sounds of Forthwegian as if they belonged to his native tongue. Then he'd hopped into the air, kicking up his heels in an extravagant gesture of contempt. "And for all the good it did you, for all the good it did your kingdom, you might as well not have fought at all. Think on that. You will have a long time to think on that." He'd turned his back and strutted away. Time Leofsig did indeed have. Inside these wooden fences, inside these towers manned by Algarvians who would sooner blaze a captive coming near than listen to him, time was very nearly the only thing he did have. He had the tunic and boots in which he'd surrendered, and he had a hard cot in a flimsy barracks. He also had work. If the captives wanted wood for cooking and wood for heating - not so great a need in Forthweg as farther south in Derlavai, but not to be ignored as winter drew nearer, either - they had to cut it and haul it back. Work gangs under Algarvian guard went out every day. If they wanted latrines to keep the camp from being swamped by filth and disease, they had to dig them. The place stank anyway, putting Leofsig in mind of a barnyard once more. If they wanted food, they had to depend on the Algarvians. Their cap- tives doled out flour as if it were silver, salt pork as if it were gold. Like most Forthwegians, Leofsig was on the blocky side. The block that was he had been narrowing ever since he'd surrendered. "They don't care," he said to his neighbor after yet another meager meal. "They don't care in the least." "Why should they?" the fellow with the cot next to his replied. He was a blond Kauman named Gutauskas, and already lean. "If we starve to death, they don't have to worry about feeding us any more." That was so breathtakingly cynical, Leofsig could only stare. The fel- low with the cot on the other side of his, though, a burly chap called Merwit, spat in disgust. "Why don't you shut up and die now, yellow- hair?" he said. "Weren't for you cursed Kaunians, we wouldn't have gotten sucked into this war in the first place." Gutauskas raised a pale eyebrow. "Oh, indeed: no doubt," he said, speaking Forthwegian without perceptible accent but with the elegant precision more characteristic of his own language. "Both his name and his looks prove King Penda to be of pure Kaunian blood." INTo THE DARKNESS for as of aze. saw said. r side me. e. He having foot of Penda. east of es in a not far endered garvian soldiers 133 "You fought well. You fought bravely," the Algarvian officer had said, trilling the slow sounds of Forthwegian as if they belonged to his native tongue. Then he'd hopped into the air, kicking up his heels in an extravagant gesture of contempt. "And for all the good it did you, for all the good it did your kingdom, you might as well not have fought at all. Think on that. You will have a long time to think on that." He'd turned his back and strutted away. Time Leofsig did indeed have. Inside these wooden fences, inside these towers manned by Algarvians who would sooner blaze a captive coming near than listen to him, time was very nearly the only thing he did have. He had the tunic and boots in which he'd surrendered, and he had a hard cot in a flimsy barracks. He also had work. If the captives wanted wood for cooking and wood for heating - not so great a need in Forthweg as farther south in Derlavai, but not to be ignored as winter drew nearer, either - they had to cut it and haul it back. Work gangs under Algarvian guard went out every day. If they wanted latrines to keep the camp from being swamped by filth and disease, they had to dig them. The place stank anyway, putting Leofsig in mind of a barnyard once more. If they wanted food, they had to depend on the Algarvians. Their cap- tives doled out flour as if it were silver, salt pork as if it were gold. Like most Forthwegians, Leofsig was on the blocky side. The block that w as he had been narrowing ever since he'd surrendered. "They don't care," he said to his neighbor after yet another meager meal. "They don't care in the least." "Why should they?" the fellow with the cot next to his replied. He was a blond Kaunian named Gutauskas, and already lean. "If we starve to death, they don't have to worry about feeding us any more." That was so breathtakingly cynical, Leofsig could only stare. The fel- low with the cot on the other side of his, though, a burly chap called Merwit, spat in disgust. "Why don't you shut up and die now, yellow- hair?" he said. "Weren't for you cursed Kaunians, we wouldn't have gotten sucked into this war in the first place." Gutauskas raised a pale eyebrow. "Oh, indeed: no doubt," he said, speaking Forthwegian without perceptible accent but with the elegant precision more characteristic of his own language. "Both his name and his looks prove King Pencla to be of pure Kaunian blood." 134 Harry Turtledove Leofsig snickered. Penda was stocky and swarthy like most Forthwegians, and bore a perfectly ordinary Forthwegian name. Merwit glared; he was the sort who fought with a verbal meat-axe, and wasn't used to getting pierced with a rapier of sarcasm. "He's got a bunch of Kaunian lickspittles around him," he said at last. "They clouded his mind, that's what they did, till he didn't know up from yesterday. Why should he care a fart what happens to Valmiera and Jelgava, Algarve can blaze 'em down, for all I care. I'll watch 'em burn and wavc bye-bye." "Aye, King Penda's lickspittles have done wonders for the Kaunians il Forthweg," Gutauskas said, sardonic still. "They've made us all ricl They've made all our neighbors love us. If there were ten of us for orl of you, Merwit, you'd understand better." He paused. "No. Yc wouldn't. Some people never understand anything." "I understand this." Merwit made a large, hard fist. "I understand I c: beat the stuffing out of you." He started toward Gutauskas. "No, curse it!" Leofsig grabbed him. "The redheads'll come down all of us if we brawl." Merwit surged in his grasp. "They won't care if we stomp these sne ing blond scuts. They can't stand 'em, either." "In the case of Mezentio's men, it is, I assure you, quite mutu Gutauskas said. When Leofsig didn't let go, Merwit slowly eased. "You just b( watch your smart mouth, Kauman," he told Gutauskas, "or one fine all of you stinking bastards in this camp'll have your pretty yellow h broken. You better pass the word, too, if you know what's goo( you." He twisted free of Leofsig and stomped off. Gutauskas watched him go, then turned back to Leofsig. "You find your head broken for having taken our part." He studied him natural philosopher examining some new species of insect. "Wb you? Forthwegians seldom do." The Kaunian's mouth twisted. "Fo of our blood seldom do." Leofsig started to answer, then stopped with his mouth h. foolishly open. He had no special love for Kaunians. His admirati Kaunians was principally limited to their women in clinging trous( needed to think for a bit before he could figure out why he hadn't Merwit against Gutauskas. At last, he said, "The Algarvians have, d ot INTo THE DARKNESS 135 in the palm of their hand. If we start squabbling in here, they'll laugh themselves sick." "That is sensible," Gutauskas said after his own pause for thought. "You would be astonished at how seldom people are sensible." "My father says the same thing," Leofsig answered. "Does he?" Gutauskas's eyebrow rose again. "And what, pray, does your father do, that he has acquired such wisdom?" Is he laughing at me? Leofsig wondered. He decided Gutauskas wasn't; it was merely the Kauman's manner. "He keeps books in Gromheort." "Ali." Gutauskas nodded. "Aye. I can see reckoning up that on which men spend their silver and gold would give a man vivid insight into the in* Id f anifo ollies of his fellow men." "I suppose so," said Leofsig, who hadn't thought about it much. He waited for Gutauskas to thank him for stopping the fight. The Kaunian did nothing of the sort. He acted as if Leofsig could hardly have acted differently. Kaunians never made it easy for their neighbors to get alone with them. Had they made it easy for their neighbors to get along with them, they wouldn't have been the Kaunians he knew. He won- dered what they would have been. Before he could take that thought any further, a squad of Algarvian guards tramped into the barracks. In bad Forthwegian, one of them said. "We search. Maybe you try escape, eh? You go out." The others sup- plemented the order with peremptory gestures with their sticks. Out Leofsig went, Gutauskas trailing after him. Crashes and thuds inside said the Algarvians were tearing the barracks to pieces. If anyone in there was plotting an escape, Leofsig didn't know about it. He did know what he'd find when the Algarvians let him and his fellow captives return: chaos. The Algarvians were good at tearing things to pieces. They didn't bother setting them to rights again. That was the captives' problem. He strolled toward the fence around the camp - carefully, because the guards there would blaze without warning Forthwegians who came too close. The fence itself wasn't particulary strong. Captives could rush it . . . if most of the ones who tried didn't mind dying before they got there. A few captives had escaped, the Algarvians discovering it only when their counts came out wrong. Leofsig didn't know how the escapees had done it. Had he, known- he'd have done it himself I 136 Harry Turtledove "You there, soldier!" a Forthwegian officer snapped at him. "If you haven't got anything better to do than waddle around like a drunken duck, draw a shovel and go fill in some slit trenches or dig some new ones. We've got no room in this camp for idle hands, and I'll thank you to remember it." "Aye, sit," Leofsig said resignedly. Even as captives, officers main- tained the tight to give common soldiers orders. The only difference was, even the brigadier who was the captives' commandant had to obey the orders of the lowliest Algarvian trooper. Leofsig wondered how the brigadier, who was also a belted earl and a proud and touchy man, enjoyed being on the receiving end of commands. Maybe the experience would teach him something about what a common soldier's life was like. Somehow, Leofsig doubted it. The shovels made a sadly rruismatched collection. A few were Forthwegian army issue; more, though, looked to have been looted from the farm surrounding the captives' camp. The officer in charge of the latrines, an intense young captain, had nonetheless arranged them in a neat rack he'd built from scrap lumber. "Ali, good," he said as Leofslg made his slow approach. "It's nasty work, to be sure, but someone's got to do it. Choose your weapon, soldier." He pointed toward the rack of shovels. "Aye, sit," Leofslg said again, and took as long as he could deciding among them. No one expected a captive to move fast; on what the Algarvians deigned to feed them, the captives couldn't move fast. Leofsig knew as much, and took advantage of it. "Now get to it," said the captain, who probably hadn't been deceived. As Leofsig started off toward the noisome trenches, the officer spoke again, this time with curiosity in his voice: "What did you do to get sent over here? The redheads mostly give this duty to Kaunians." "It wasn't one of the redheads," Leofsig said sheepishly. "It was one o our own officers. I don't suppose I looked busy enough to suit him." "Seeing how you went about getting a shovel there, I can't say I'hil surprised," the captain answered. He sounded more amused than a Leofsig hadn't done anything drastic enough to deserve more punish than latrine duty in a captives' camp. After a moment, the captain on, "Maybe it's just as well you got nabbed. Seeing you, the Kau won't think they're the only ones getting stuck with the shit detail." re in e ay I'm angry; hment went mans 1.11 INTo THE DARKNESS 137 "Just as well for you, maybe, sir," Leofslg said, "but I don't see how it's just as well for me." "Go on," the Forthwegian officer said again. "You're not going to get me to waste any more of my time arguing with you." Leofsig wouldn't have minded doing exactly that. Since he hadn't managed it, he went off to work. He wished he could hold his nose and dig at the same time. A couple of Kaunians in trousers were already working among the slit trenches. The captain in charge of the latrines had been right; they seemed surprised to have a Forthwegian for company. Leofslg started filling in a trench. Flies rose, resentful, in buzzing clouds. Seeing he was doing the same thing they were, the Kaunians went back to it themselves. Leofsig noted that with some small relief, then forgot about them. He was working as fast as he could now, to get the job over with. If the Kaunians liked that, fine. If they didn't, he thought, too cursed bad. "You've got the wrong man, I tell you!" the prisoner shouted as Bembo marched him up the stairs of the constabulary building in central Ttican'co. Bembo had clapped manacles on him; they clanked with every step he climbed. When the prisoner's complaints started to get on Bembo's nerves, he pulled the club off his belt and whacked it into the palm of his hand. "Do you want to see how loud you can yell with a mouthful of broken teeth?" he asked. The prisoner suddenly fell silent. Bembo similed. At the top of the stairs, Bembo gave him a shove that took him into the door face first. Clucking at the prisoner's clumsiness, Bembo opened the door and gave him another shove. This one sent him through the doorway. The constabulary sergeant at the front desk was at least as portly as Bembo. "Well, well," he said. "What have we here?" Like a lot of questions Algarvians asked, that one was for rhetorical effect. The next one wasn't: "Why'd you haul in our dear friend Martusino this time, Bembo?" "Loitering in front of a Jeweler's, Sergeant," Bembo answered. "Why, you lying sack of guts!" Martusino yelled. He addressed the sergeant: "I was just walking past the place, Pesaro - I swear on my mother's grave. That last stretch of Reform did the trick for me. I've gone straight, I have." 138 Harry Turtledove He wasn't so persuasive as he might have been; the manacles kept him from talking with his hands. Sergeant Pesaro looked dubious. Bembo snarled. "Oh, he's gone straight, all right - straight back to his old tricks. After I spotted him, I grabbed him and searched him. He had these in his belt pouch." Bembo reached into his own pouch and pulled out three golden rings. One was a plain band, one set with a polished, faceted piece ofjet, and one with a fair-sized sapphire. "I never saw them before," the prisoner said. Pesaro inked a pen and started to write. "Suspicion of burglary," he said. "Suspicion of intent to commit burglary. Maybe they'll get sick of this and finally hang you, Martusino. It'd be about time, if anybody cares what I think." "This fat son of a sow is framing an innocent man!" Martusino cried. "He planted those rings on me, the stinking lump of dung. Like I just said, I never saw lem before in my life, and there's not a soul can prove I did." Being a constable required Bembo to take more abuse than most Algarvians would tolerate, as it let him deal out abuse with more impunity than most Algarvians. enjoyed. But he took only so much. Sack ofguts had come up to the edge of the line andfat son of a sow went over it. He pulled out his club again and hit Martusino a good lick. The prisoner howled. "Struck while resisting arrest," Pesaro noted, and scribbled another line on the form he was filling out. Martusino yelled louder than ever, partly from pain, partly from outrage. Pesaro shook his head. "Oh, shut up, why don't you? Take him for his pretty picture, Bembo, and then to the lockup, so I don't have to listen to him any more." "I'll do that, Sergeant. He's giving me a headache, too." Bembo ges- tured with the club. "Go on, get moving, or I'll give you another taste." Martusino got moving. Bembo escorted him to the recording section, to get the particulars on him down in permanent form. A pretty little sketch artist took his likeness. Bembo marveled at the way she could get a man's essence on to paper with a few deft strokes of pencil and char1coal stick. It wasn't sorcery, not in any conventional sense of the word, but it seemed rm'raculous all the same. He also marveled at the way the sketch artist filled out her tunic. "Why won't you go out to supper with me, Saffa?" he asked, not quite whin- ing but not far from it, either. INTo THE DARKNESS er hy in- 139 "Because I don't feel like wrestling," Saffa answered. "Why don't I just slap your face now? Then it'll be as if we'd gone to supper." She bent her head to her work. Martusino was rash enough to laugh. Bembo trod on his foot, hard. The prisoner yelped. Bembo did his best to grind off a toe or two, but didn't quite succeed. Saffa kept right on sketching. Such things happened all the time in constabulary stations. Sometimes worse things happened. Everyone knew that. No one saw any need to make a fuss about it. When she was done with Martusino's portrait, she told Bembo, "You'll have to take the manacles off him for a little while. He needs to sign the sketch, and we'll need fingermarks from him, too." One of the constables in the recording section covered Martusino with a small stick while Bembo unlocked the manacles. Unwillingly, the prisoner scrawled his name below the picture of him Saffa had drawn. Even more unwillingly, he let her ink his fingertips and set the impres- sions of the marks on the paper beside the sketch. "You're out of business for a while now, chum," Bembo said genially. "Walk off with anything else that doesn't belong to you, and our mages will lead us straight to your door." The manacles closed on Martusino's wrists again. "I didn't take anything this time," the prisoner protested. "Aye, and they get babies from out behind the fig trees," Bembo said. He and Martusino both knew a crooked wizard could break the link between a criminal and his sketch, signature, and fingermarks. Having signature and fingermarks to go with the image, though, made breaking the link harder and more expensive for the fellow who wanted it broken. "We're done here," Saffa said. Bembo took Martusino off to the lockup. Martusino knew the way; he'd been there before. As he and Bembo drew near, the bored-looking warder hastily closed a small book and shoved it into a desk drawer. Bembo caught just a glimpse of a bare female backside on the cover. "I've got a present for you, Frontino," he said, and gave the prisoner a shove. "Just what I always wanted." Frontino's expression belled his words. He examined Martusino. "This isn't the first time I've seen this lug, but I'll be cursed if I can remember his name. Who are you, pal?" Martusino hesitated for a split second. Before he could give a false I I 140 Harry Turtledove name, Bembo hefted the club. Martusino abruptly decided playing the game by the rules would be a good idea. He answered the warder's questions without backtalk after that. Bembo had questions to answer, too, some of them duplicating the ones Pesaro had asked. When they were over, Frontino took a small stick out of the desk drawer - Bernbo got another glimpse of that interesting book cover - and aimed it at Martusino. At his nod, Bembo undid the manacles. The constable also held his club at the ready. "Strip off," the warder told Martusino. "Come on, come on - everything. You know the drill, so don't make me tell you anything twice." Martusinc, shed shoes and stockings, then pulled off tunic, kilt, and finally drawers. "Skin and bones," Bembo said disdainfully. "Nothing W skin and bones." The prisoner gave him a dirty look, but seemed to thin) another comment would earn him another clout. He was night. Frontino rose, gathered up the belongings, and stuffed them into cloth bag. Then he threw Martusino a tunic, a kilt, and cloth slippers 2 striped in black and white - lockup garb. Sullenly, the prisoner put it a. It didn't fit very well. He knew better than to complain. "The Judl decides you're innocent, you'll get your own junk back then," d warder said. He and Bembo both grinned; they knew how unlikely tt was. He went on, "Otherwise, come see me when you get out Reform~ I may have some trouble remembering where I stashed it, bt expect I will if you ask me nice." kyou pay me off, he meant. Helpfully, Bembo said, "Pesaro thinks they may just up and hang this time." Martusino scowled. The warder shrugged. "Well, in that case he pr ably won't be coming back for it. It won't go to waste." Bembo nod( In that case, Frontino would keep what he wanted and sell the i Warders rarely died poor. "They won't hang me," Martusino said, though he sounded r) hopeful than confident. "Come on." Frontino unlocked the big iron lock on the outer do, the lockup. "Go on in." Martusino obeyed. Bembo and the wo watched him through the barred window. The inner door had a sor ous lock. The warder mumbled the words to the releasing spell. The 11 door flew open. Martusinc, went in among the rest of the prisoners av INTO THE DARKNESS 141 ing their punishment. Frontino mumbled again. The door slammed shut. "What would happen if a prisoner who knew some magecraft went to work on that inner door?" Bembo asked. "It's supposed to be proof against anyone below a second-rank mage," the warder answered, "and fancy mages don't go into the ordinary lockup you'd best believe they don't, Bembo my boy. We have special holes for them." "I've heard fancy whores say things like that," Bembo remarked. Frontino snorted and gave him a shot in the ribs with an elbow. "I didn't know you were such a funny fellow," he said. "I don't want too many people to know," Bembo said. "If they did, I'd have to go up on the stage and get rich and famous, and I don't sup- pose I could stand that. I'd rather stay a simple constable." "You're pretty simple, all night," Frontino agreed. Bembo laughed, but not the way the warder thought he did: he'd expected Frontino to say something like that, and was amused to be right. Something else crossed his mind. "Say, what was that you were reading?" he asked. "It looked pretty interesting." "Talk about your fancy whores," the warder said, and pulled the book out of the desk. When Bembo could tear his eyes away from that arrest- ing cover illustration, he discovered the romance was called Putinai: the Emperor's Lady. Frontino gave it his most enthusiastic recommendation: "She does more screwing in a week than an army of cabinetmakers could in a year. 11 Sounds good." Bembo read the fine print under the title: "Based on the exciting true history of the turbulent Kaunian Empire." He shook his head. "Kaunians have always been filthy people, I guess." "I'd say so," the warder agreed. "Putinai does everything, and loves every bit of it, too. You can borrow the book after I'd done with it - if you promise to give it back." "I will, I will," Bembo assured him, with something less than perfect sincerity. Frontino must have recognized that, for he said, "Or you could spring for one yourself Seems like every third romance these days is about how vile the Kaunian Empire was and how the bold, fierce Algarvian merce- naries finally overthrew it. Our ancestors were tough bastards, if half what you read is true." 142 Harry Turtledove "Aye," Beinbo said. "Well, maybe I win buy one. A little extra cash in my pockets wouldn't hurt, though." 11 Maybe we can take care of that." Frontino got out the bag in which he'd stored Martusino's clothes and effects, and took from it the burglar's belt pouch. He and Bembo divided up the silver and the couple of small goldpieces they found inside. "I get the odd coin," Bembo said, scooping it up. "Pesaro's going to want his cut, too." Frontino nodded. That was how things worked in Tricarico. Dragons spiraled high above Tirgoviste harbor - above all the harbors of Sibiu - keeping watch against Algarvian attack from the air or from the sea. They reassured Commander Cornelu whenever he looked up into the heavens. No doubt mages behind closed doors also probed for any distur- bance in the ley lines that would mean an Algarvian fleet was setting forth against the island kingdom. But, because the mages were hidden away, Cornelu had to assume they were on the job. The dragons he could see. Today, he couldn't see them so well as he would have liked: mist and low, thin clouds made them almost disappear. The weather, which wol only worsen as autumn gave way to winter, would make it harder for dragons to give early warning and would put a greater burden on the mages shoulders. Cornelu frowned. Magic was all very well, but he wanted the eyes in the sky to be as effective as they could, too. Seamen who took chances: did not often live to take very many. That held equally true for fishermen,, in sailboats, sailors in cruisers skimming along the ley lines, and leviathan riders like himself Musing on the wisdom of taking few chances, Cornelu tripped on a cobblestone and almost rolled down the hill into the sea. Tirgoviste ro ily f wift rom the shore; some of the bright-painted shops set on hillsides showed noticeably more wall on the side nearer the Narrow Sea than on the other. A wine merchant had a QUITTING BUSINESS banner stretch~ across his window. Cornelu. ducked in to see what bargains he migh" 1 '114 te, 1h up. Sibiu was a merchant kingdom; lying where it did, it could scarc be anything else. The scent of a bargain fired Comelu's blood hardly than the scent of his wife's favorite perfume. INTo THE DARKNESS ors the the ur- rth es in ances rmen than on a an on tched t pick carcely less 143 He found few bargains in the wine shop, only empty shelves. "Why did you put the banner up?" he asked the merchant. "Where am I going to find any more stock?" the fellow answered bit- terly. "Almost all I sold were Algarvian vintages, and the war's blazed our trade there right through the heart. Oh, I can get in a few bottles from Valmiera andjelgava, but that's all I can get: a few. They're expensive as all getout, too - expensive for me to buy, and too expensive to sell very fast. Might as well pack it in and try another line of work. I couldn't do worse, believe me." "King Mezentio would be lording it over us if we didn't do something about him," Cornelu said. "We almost waited too long in the Six Years' War. We don't dare take that chance again." "You can talk like that - King Burebistu pays your bills." The wine merchant's scowl was gloomier than the weather. "Who will pay mine, when the war cuts me off from my source of supply? You know as well as I do: nobody." Cornelu left in a hurry. He wished he'd never gone into the shop. He wanted to think of Sibiu as united in the effort against Algarve. He knew that wasn't so, but thinking of it as being so helped him do his job better. Getting his nose rubbed in the truth had the opposite effect, one he didn't want. He hurried down the hill to the harbor. Gulls scavenging garbage from the gutters rose in mewing, squawking clouds as he strode past them. He hoped none of them would avenge itself on his hat or the sleeve of his tunic. As if to give that hope the lie, a dropping splashed on to the cob- bles only a yard or so from his shoe. He hurried on, and reached Commodore Delfirm's office unbefouled. After the two men exchanged salutes and kisses on the cheeks, Comelu asked, "Sir, have we had any better luck in getting leviathans into the Barian ports?" Glumly, Delfinu shook his head. "No, and we've lost more men try- ing, too, as you will probably have heard." When Cornelu nodded, the head of the Leviathan Service went on, "The Algarvians have Imola and Lungni as tightly locked up as if they were virgin daughters. They keep dragons in the air over them all the time, too, so we can't learn from above what they're doing, either." "Curse them," Cornelu said. Dragons above Tirgoviste were one 144 Harry Turtledove thing, dragons above the ports the enemy had taken for his own some- thing else again - something onunous. Cornelu took a deep breath. "If you like, sir, Eforiel and I will cross the strait and see what they're up to - and, if you like, put down some eggs to keep them from doing it, what- ever it is." Delfinu shook his head again. "I am ordering no man across the strait to Lungri and Imola. I have lost too many. The Algarvians are not so skilled in using leviathans as we are" - pride rang in his voice - "but they have become all too skilled at hunting them down." The pride leaked away, to be replaced by chagrin. "My lord, you need not order me." Cornelu drew himself up to stiff attention. "I volunteer my leviathan and myself Delfinu bowed. "Commander, Sibiu is fortunate to have you in her service. But I will not take advantage of your courage in this way, as if I were a cold-blooded Unkerlanter or a calculating Kuusaman. The odds of success do notiustify the risk ... and your wife is with child, is it not so?" -Sir, it is so," Cornelu said. "But I am not with child myself, and I took oath to serve King Burebistu and his kingdom as best I could. What the kingdom requires of me, that shall I do." "This the kingdom does not require of you," Delfinu said. "I have n desire to make your wife grow old a widow, nor to make your child gro, up not knowing its father. I will send you into danger: indeed, I will set you into danger without a qualm. But I will not send you to almost c( tain death when no good to king or kingdom is likely to come from i Cornelu bowed in turn. "My lord, I am lucky to have you as superior. Unlike the no-" He stopped, unsure how Count Delf would take what he'd been on the point of saying. Even though he hadn't said it, Delfinu figured out what it "Unlike the nobles in the Kauman kingdoms, ours are supposed to k a little something before they put on their fancy uniforms? Is that you had in mind, Commander?" To Cornelu's relief, he laughed. "Well, aye, sir - something on that order, anyhow," Cornelu a ted. "Kaunian blood is older than ours, which makes them take mor( in it than we do," Delfinu said. "If you ask my opinion, being old, makes it thinner, but no Kaunian has seen fit to ask my opinion. ' INTo THE DARKNESS e- ,qf trait so stiff her if I odds not nd I hat e no ow send t cer- om,it. as my Delfinu it was. o know at what admit- re pride der only For my 145 part, I confess to losing very little sleep over theirs. Personally, I feel more sympathy for Algarve, but I know my kingdom's needs come ahead o my personal sympathies." "Myself, I have no great use for the Kaunian kingdoms," Comelu said, "but I have no use at all for Algarve. Did King Mezentio get his hands on us, he would squeeze till our eyes popped out of our heads." "Since I think you are right about that, I can hardly argue with you," Delfinu said. "But, for the time being, I cannot in good conscience send you forth against the Banian ports, either. Enjoy your time off duty, Commander, and keep in mind that it is not likely to last." "Very well, my lord." Cornelu saluted again. "I think I'll draw a bucket from the rest crate and pay Efoniel a visit in her pen. She'll think I've forgotten her, poor thing. I don't want that." "No, indeed." Count Deffirm returned the salute. "Very well, Commander, you are dismissed from my presence." The chamber in which the large Leviathan Services rest crate sat had a strong fish smell. The smell would have been much stronger had the rest crate been other than what it was. Comelu reached in and drew forth a big bucket full of mackerel and squid, all of them as fresh as when they'd been pulled from the sea. He lugged it down to the wire-enclosed pen where his leviathan slowly swam back and forth, back and forth. Efori'el swam to the little wharf that jutted out into the pen. She stuck her head out of the water and examined Cornelu first with one small black eye, then with the other. "Aye, it's me," he said, and reached out to pat Ine ena of her tapered snout. "It's me, all night, and I've brought you presents." He tossed her a squid. Those enormous jaws came open. They closed on the squid with a wet smacking noise. When they opened again, the squid was gone. Eforiel emitted a soft, pleased grunt. Cornelu fed her a mackerel. She approved of that, too. He kept tossing her treats tin the bucket was empty. He had to show her it was empty. "Sorry - no more," he said. Now the noise she made, though like nothing that could come from a human throat, was full of disappointment. "Sorry," he repeated, and patted her again. She didn't take his hand off at the wrist - or his arm at the shoulder. She was a clever, well-trained beast. Commodore Delfinu had as much as ordered Cornelli to h;ive n annrl 146 Harry Turtledove time while he wasn't assailing the Algarvians. After taking the empty bucket back for scrubbing, he headed away from the harbor, off to the quarters he shared with his wife. He could think of no one in whose company he would sooner be. Costache was baking when he walked in; the spicy smell of cakes made the small, square rooms in which they lived seem anything but military. "I'm glad you're back," she said. "I didn't know whether Delfinu would send you out or not." "He didn't," Comelu said. That Delfinu had kept him in Tirgoviste because he judged going out to the Barian ports a suicide mission was nothing his wife needed to know. He walked over to Costache, took her in his arms, and gave her a kiss, leaning over the swell of her belly to plant it on her mouth. With a gnin, he told her, "I'm glad I'm taller than you are. Other-wise, I'd have to sneak up on you from behind instead of doing this the regular way." "If you'd sneaked up on me from behind instead of doing it the regu- lar way, I wouldn't be expecting now," Costache retorted. Her green eyes sparkled. Now that she wasn't throwing up every morning any more, pregnancy agreed with her. Along with her belly, her cheeks were rounder than they had been. To disguise that a bit, she let her red-gok hair fall straight to her shoulders, where she had worn it piled high on he head. Cornelu did step behind her. He reached around and cupped he breasts in his hands. They were fuller and rounder than they had beer too. They were also more tender - he had to be careful not to squee2 too hard. When he was careful, they were more sensitive than they h,- been; Costache's breath sighed out. "You see?" Comelu murmured into her ear. "From behind isn't bad." Having murmured into that ear, he nibbled it. Costache turned and put her arms around him. "And how are thir from in front?" she asked. Things from in front were fine. In its generosity, the kingdom of Sit had furmshed them with two military cots, which they'd pushed togeth With Comelu and Costache both eager, the cots might have been a fi: soft bed at a fancy hostel. Before long, his wife gasped and quive beneath Cornelu, Her belly grew hard and firm as her womb tightei during her spasm of pleasure. Cornelu spent himself a moment later. INTo THE DARKNESS 147 He didn't let his weight down on her, as he would have before she was with child. "We won't be able to do it like that much longer," he said, and set a hand on her belly to show why. "Someone in there is getting in the way." As if indignant, the baby kicked. Cornelu and Costache both laughed, as content as any two people could be during wartime. Pekka was working, and working hard, though no one could ha proved it by looking at her. She sat at the desk in her office at KaJaa City College, staring out the window at the driving rain. Every once a while, her eyes would slip down to the sheets of paper spread across t desk. Once, as the rain kept drumming down, she reached out, inked a pe and wrote a couple of lines below what was already on the last of t sheets. She didn't look at them again for several iminutes. When she di she blinked in surprise, as if someone else's hand, not her own, had do that writing. Partly recalled to herself, Pekka wondered what the students in h theoretical sorcery class would think if they could see her now. Th would probably laugh like loons. Comics had been making jokes abo absent-minded mages since the days of the Kaunian Empire. Some of t Kaunian jokes had survived to the present day, and sounded remarkab like their modern equivalent. Some of them had doubtless been ancie in Kaunian times, too. And then Pekka drifted away again, back into the haze of co centration that was the next thing to a trance. She noticed the rain o as background noise. Somewhere down at the root of things, the laws similarity and contagion were connected. She was morally certain of though wizards had been treating them as separate entities for as long men had been working magic. If she could link them together ... She had no idea what would happen if she could link them toftthe She would know something she hadn't known. She would know som thing no one in the world had ever known. That was enough. That w more than enough. 148 INTo THE DARKNESS Is She scribbled another line. She wasn't close to an answer. She had no idea how long she would need to get close to an answer. She was getting closer to designing a sorcerous experiment that might tell her whether she was on the right track. Someone knocked on the door. Pekka did her best not to hear. Her best was not good enough. She'd been about to write another line. Whatever she'd been on the point of setting down vanished from her mind. Fury roared in to take its place. Kuusamans were as a rule easygoing, especially when set alongside the proud and touchy folk of the kingdoms of Algarvic stock. But every mage had to keep in mind the difference between the rule and the exception. Spninging to her feet, Pekka dashed to the door and flung it wide. "What are you doing interrupting me?" she screeched, even before it had opened all the way. Her husband, fortunately, lived up to the Kuusaman reputation for calm. "I'm sorry, dear," Leino said. His narrow eyes didn't widen; no sur- prise showed on his broad, high-cheekboned face. He'd seen Pekka burst like a large egg before. "It is time to head home, though." "Oh," Pekka said in a small voice. The real world returned with a rush. She wouldn't unify contagion and similarity this afternoon, nor even figure out how to take that one step closer to finding out whether unifying them was even possible. With the real world's embrace came acute embarrassment. Looking down at her shoes, she mumbled, "I'm sorry I shouted at you." "It's all right." Leino's shrug made water dnip from the bri'm of his hat and the hem of his heavy wool rain cape; his office was in a different building from Pekka's. "If I'd known you were thinking hard, I'd have stood out here a while longer. We're not in that big a hurry, not that I know of " "No, no, no." Now Pekka turned briskly practical. She was that way most of the time: except when thinking hard, as her husband put it. She pulled on rubber overboots, took her cap from the peg on which it hung, and jammed her own broad-brimmed hat down over her straight black hair. "You're right - we'd better get back. My sister's been trying to corral Uto long enough - I'm sure she'd say so." "She loves him," Leino said. 150 Harry Turtledove "I love him, too," Pekka said. "That doesn't mean he isn't a handful - or two handfuls, or three. Come on. We can catch the caravan at the edge of the campus. It'll take us most of the way there." "Good enough." Amusement danced in Leino's eyes: watching Pekka go in the space of a few breaths from wooly-headed scholar to a planner who might have served on the Kuusaman General Staff never failed to tickle him. Raindrops pelted down on Pekka as soon as she stepped outside. She hadn't gone ten paces before her hat and cape were as wet as Leino's. She ignored the rain in a different way from the one she'd used while off in the realm of theory back in her office. Any Kuusaman who couldn't ignore rain had had the misfortune of being born in the wrong land. "How was your day?" she asked, squelching along beside her husband. "Pretty good, actually," Leino answered. "I think we've made a break- through on strengthening behemoth armor against beams from heavy sticks. " "They've had you working on that for a while," Pekka said. "I haven't heard you talk about breakthroughs before." "This is a whole new idea." Leino looked around to make sure no one was close enough to overhear before going on, "Ordinary armor I s just iron, of course, or steel. It can reflect a beam if it's polished enough, or spread the heat around so the beam won't burn through if it doesn't stay right in the same spot long enough." Pekka nodded. "That's how people have always done it, sure enough. You've found something different?" She cocked her head to one side and looked at her husband with approval, glad she wasn't the only one in the family straying off the beaten track. "That's what we've done, all right." Leino also nodded, enthusiasti- cally. "It turns out that, if you make a sort of sandwich of steel and then a special porcelain and then steel again, you get armor that'k a lot stronger than what we're using now without weighing any more." "YOU don't mean a sandwich with three separate layers, do yoii?" Pekka asked with a small frown. "I can't think of any kind of porcelain so special that it wouldn't be easy to break in large, thin sheets;" "You're absolutely right. I think that's why nobody's taken this approach before," Leino said. "The trick is sorcerously fusing the porce- lain to the steel on either side of it, and doing it so we don't wreck the INTo T14E DAP-KNESS temper of the steel in the process." He grinned at her. "We've wrecked a lot of other tempers in the process, I'll tell you that. But now I think we're getting the hang of it." "That will be good," Pekka said. "It will be especially good if we get drawn into the madness on the mainland of Derlaval." "Aye, though I hope we don't," Leino said. "But you're right again - not much place for behemoths in the island-hopping kind of war we're fighting against Gyongyos." "Oh!" Pekka muttered something worse than Oh! under her breath. "There goes the caravan. Now we'll have to wait a quarter of an hour for the next one." "At least we'll be out of the rain," Leino said. Every caravan stop in Kajaam - so far as Pekka knew, every stop in Kuusamo - was roofed against rain and sleet and snow. The stops wouldn't have been worth having if they weren't. A news-sheet vendor was taking advantage of the shelter when Pekka and Leino came in to get out of the wet. He waved a sheet at them, say- ing, "Want to read about the ultimatum Swernmel of Unkerlant has handed Zuwayza?" "Something unfortunate should happen to Swemmel of Unkerlant," Leino said. That didn't keep him from handing the vendor a couple of square copper coins and taking a sheet. He sat down on a bench, Pekka beside hini. They read together. Pekka's eyebrows rose. "Swernmel doesn't ask for much, does he?" she said. "Let's see." Leino ran his hand down the page. "All the border forti- fications, all the power points halfway from the border to Bishah, the right to base a fleet at the harbor of Samawa. - and to have the Zuwayzin pay for it. No, not much: not much he deserves, I mean." "And all that on pain of war if Zuwayza refuses," Pekka said sadly. "If he were an ordinary man instead of a king, he' be up before a panel of judges on extortion charges." Leino had read a little more than she had. "Looks like another war, sure enough. Here, see a crystal report from Bishah quotes their foreign minister as saying that Yielding to an unjust demand is worse than making one. If that doesn't sound like the Zuwayzin intend to fight, I don't know what does." 152 Harry Turtledove "I wish them well," Pekka said. "So do V' her husband answered. "The only thing I'm sorry about is that, if they'd given in, Swernmel might have gone back to war with Gyongyos. As is, the Gongs are only fighting us, and that makes them tougher." "If a few islands out in the Bothman Ocean were in different places, if a few ley lines ran in different directions, we'd have no quarrel with Gyongyos," Pekka said. "Gyongyos would probably have a quarrel with us, though," Leino answered. "The Gongs enjoy fighting, seems like." 'I wonder what they say about us," Pekka said in musing tones. Whatever it was, it did not appear in the Kajaani Crier or any other Kuusaman news sheet. A caravan hummed up to the stop. The conductor opened the door. A couple of people in hats and capes got off. Pekka preceded Lemo up the steps and into the car. They both plopped eight-copper silver bits in the fare box. Nodding, the conductor waved them back to the seats, as if it were only through his generosity that they had so many from which to choose. As the caravan began to move, Pekka said, "My grandmother said that, when she was a little girl, her grandmother told her how frightened she was when she was a little girl, the first time she got up on the step to go into a ley-line caravan. There it was, floating on nothing, and she couldn't see why it didn't fall down or tip over." "Can't expect a child to understand the way complex sorceries work," Leino answered. "For that matter, back in those days ley lines were a new thing in the world, and nobody understood them very well - though people thought they did." "People always think they know more than they do," Pekka said. "It's one of the things that make them people." They got off at the road that led up to their house. No butterflies flitted now. No birds sang. Rain fell. Rain dripped from trees. Wet branch ' slapped them in the face as they slogged uphill to pick up Uto from Pekka's sister. When Elimaki came to the door, she looked harried. Uto, on the other hand, seemed the picture of innocence. Pekka did not need grounding in theoretical sorcery to know appearances could deceive. INTo THE DARKNESS "What did you do?" she asked him. "Nothing," he answered sweetly, as he always did. Pekka glanced to her sister. Elimaki said. "He went climbing in the pantry. He knocked over a five-pound canister of flour, and then tried to tell me he hadn't. He n-fight have gotten away with it, too, if he hadn't left a footprint right in the middle of the pile of flour on the pantry floor." Leino started to laugh. So did Pekka, in spite of herself She and her husband weren't the only ones in the farmily straying off the beaten track, either. Ruffling Uto's hair, she said, "You'll go a long way, son - if we decide to let you live." 153 Colonel Dzirnavu was not a happy man. So far as Talsu could tell, Dzimavu was never a happy man. Like a lot of common people, the Jelgavan count took out his unhappiness on everyone around him. Since he was an officer and a noble, the soldiers in his regiment couldn't tell him to jump off a cliff, as they surely would have if he'd been a com- moner like themselves. "Vartu!" he shouted one morning - he shouted the way singers went through the scales, to warm up his voice. "Confound it, Vartu, where have you gone and hidden yourselP Get your whipworthy arse into my tent this instant!" "Confound it, Vartu!" Talsu echoed as Dzirnavu's servant came by on the dead run. Vartu gave him a dirty look before ducking under the tent- flap and facing his principal's wrath. "How may I serve you, my lord?" he asked, his words clearly audible through the canvas. "How may you serve me?" Dzirnavu bellowed. "How may you serve me? You may get me that rascally cook, that's how, and serve me his guts for tripe at my luncheon today. Will you look at this? Will you look at this, Vartu? The hani-fisted thumbfingered son of a whore had the gall to serve me a plate of runny scrambled eggs. How in the names of the powers above am I supposed to eat runny scrambled eggs?" Talsu looked down at his own tin plate, which contained the usual breakfast scoop of mush and the equally usual length of cheap, stale sausage. He glanced over to his friend Smilsu, who was sitting on a rock close by. In a low voice, he asked, "How in the names of the powers above am I supposed to eat runny scrambled eggs?" 154 Harry Turtledove "With a spoon?" Smilsu suLuested. His breakfast ration was no more prepossessing than Talsu's. "I've got one of those, sure enough." Talsu held it up. "Now if I only had some eggs, I'd be in business." Smilsu sadly shook his head. "If you're going to grouse and grumble about every least little thing, my boy, you'll never get to be a colonel like our illustrious regimental commander." He set a finger by the side of his nose. "Of course, if you don't grouse and grumble, you'll never get to be a colonel, either. You haven't got the bloodlines for it." "Bloodlines are fine, if you're a horse." Talsu let his eyes slide toward Count Dzirnavu's tent. "Or even some particular part of a horse." Smilsu, who was in the middle of swallowing a mouthful of mush, almost choked to death on it. Talsu went on, "For picking soldiers, though . Now he shook his head. "If we had real soldiers leading us, we'd be down in Tricarico this time, instead of still slogging our way through these cursed hills." He snapped his fingers. "I bet that's why the stinking Algarvians haven't really counterattacked." He'd got a jump ahead of Smilsu. "What's why?" his friend asked. "What are you talking about?" Talsu dropped his voice to hardly more than a whisper, so only Smilsu would hear: "If the redheads hit us hard, they'd be bound to kill off a lot of officers. Sooner or later, we'd run out of nobles to take their places Then we'd have to start using men who knew what they were doing instead. We'd be sure to lick Algarve after that, so they're just playing it safe and smart." "I'd be sure you were right, if only I thought the Algarvians had that much upstairs." Without doing anything more than sitting a little straighter, Smilsu managed to convey the Algarvians' swaggering poin-, posity. As he slumped back down, he went on, "And you'd better not say anything like that around anybody you're not sure of, either, or you'l sorry for a long time." Vartu came out of Dzirnavu's tent just then. Talsu and Snii1su both silent. Talsu liked the colonel's servant, and trusted him fairly far, but no far enough to speak treason in front of him. Mumbling under his breath, Vartu stalked past the two soldiers. A moment later, Talsu heard him yelling at a cook. The cook yelled back. Smilsu's snicker was amused and sympathetic at the same time. "Poor INTo THE DARKNESS more i,only ~ard iilsu, Dked Now ~n in irsed Mns kled. 4ilsu a lot ices. Ding Ig it that little ~m- ~ say 11 be 155 Vartu," he said. "He gets it from both sides at once." " So do all of us," TaIsu answered, "from our officers and from the Algarvians." "Someone put vinegar in your beer this morning, that's plain," Smilsu said. "Why don't you go over there and scream at the cooks, too?" "Because they'd stick a carving knife in me or hit me over the head with a pot," Talsu said. "I can't get away with things like that. I'm not a count, or even servant to a count." "Aye, you're a no-account, all right," Smilsu said, whereupon Talsu felt like hitting him over the head with a pot. After their less than magnificent breakfast, the jelgavan soldiers cau- tiously advanced. Exhortations from King Donalitu. to move faster kept coming forward. Colonel Dzimavu would read them out whenever they did, and would blame the men for not living up to their sovereign's requests. Then he and his superiors would order another tiptoeing step ahead, and would seem surprised when King Donalitu found it necessary to exhort the troops again. The Algarvians did their best to make life unpleasant for their foes, too. The country through which Talsu and his comrades moved was made for defense. One stubborn soldier with a stick who found a good hiding place could hold up a company. There were plenty of good hiding places to find, and plenty of stubborn Algarvians. to fill them. Each redhead had to be flanked out and flushed from cover, which made what would have been a slow business slower. And the Algarvians had taken to burying eggs in the ground, and attaching to them trips lines that would rupture their shells. A soldier who didn't watch where he put his feet was liable to go up in a great gout of sorcerous fire. That slowed the jelgavans, too, tiR dowsers could find the eggs and mark paths past them. Most of the redheads who lived in the mountain country had fled to lower ground farther west. A few people, though, were obstinate, as jelgavan mountain folk also had a name for being. Talsu captured an old Algarvian with a bald head, a big white mustache, and knobby knees and hairy calves sticking out from under the hem of his kilt. "Come on, granips," he said, and gestured with his stick. "I'm going to take you back to our encampment so they can ask you some questions." "A dog should futter you," the old man growled in accented jelgavan. 156 Harry Turtledove He added a couple of other choice oaths in Talsu's language, then fen back on Algarvian. Talsu didn't know any Algarvian, but he didn't think the captive was paying him compliments. All he did was gesture with the stick again. Cursing still, the old man got moving. Back at the camp, a bored-looking lieutenant who spoke Algarvian started questioning Talsu's captive. The old man kept right on cursing, or so Talsu thought. The lieutenant stopped looking bored and started look- ing harassed. Talsu hid a smile. He didn't mind seeing an officer sweat, even if it was because of an Algarvian. He was about to head off toward the front line again when a trooper from a different company brought in another cursing captive. Talsu stopped and stared. Everyone who heard those curses stopped and stared. The other soldier's captive (you lucky bastard, Talsu thought) was a good- looking - a very good-looking - woman of about twenty-five. Coppery hair flowed halfivay down her back. Her knees were not knobby, nor her calves hairy. Talsu examined them carefully to make sure of those facts. Her curses even drew from his tent Colonel Dzirnavu, who had been in there alone except, perhaps, for a bottle of what his servant called restorative. By the lurch in his stride, he was quite thoroughly restored. His eyes needed a moment before they lit on the captive. "Well, well," he said when they finally did. "What have we here?" "That's what they call a woman," a soldier near Talsu muttered. "Haven't you ever seen one before?" Talsu coughed to keep from laugh- ing out loud. Dzirnavu advanced on her at a ponderous waddle. He looked her up and down, plainly imagining everything the tunic and kilt concealed. She looked him up and down, too. Her face also showed what she was think- ing. Talsu would not have wanted anyone, let alone a good-looking woman, thinking such things about him. "Where did you find her?" Dzirnavu asked the soldier who had brought her back to camp. "Spying on us, unless I imiss my guess." "Lord, she was going into a little cottage up ahead." The tro6per pointed. "My thought is, she was trying to take away a few last things,, before she fled for good." The Algarvian woman pointed at Dzirnavu. Where did you find him?" she asked the soldier who had captured her. Her jelgavan was accented but fluent. "I would say under a flat rock, but where would you INTo THE DARKNESS as u 157 find a flat rock big enough to hide him?" Like most jelgavans, Dzirnavu was quite fair. That let Talsu watch the flush mount from his beefy neck to his hairline. "She is a spy," he snapped. "She must be a spy. Take her to my tent." A murky light kindled in his bloodshot gray eyes. "I shall attend to her interrogation personally." Talsu could think of only one thing that might mean. He knew a moment's pity for the Algarvian woman, even if he wouldn't have minded having her himself Dzirnavu's "Interrogation," though, was liable to crush her to death - and he wouldn't learn anything while he was doing it. After a while, the soldier who'd captured the woman came out of the tent. His face bore a curious mixture of excitement and disgust. "He had me cover her while he tied her to the bed," he reported, and then, "He made her lie on her belly." Along with his comrades, Talsu sadly shook his head. "Waste of a woman, especially one so pretty," he said. "If that's what he's got in mind, he could do it with a boy instead." "Officers have all the fun," the other soldier said, "and they get to pick what kind of fun they have." Since Talsu couldn't argue with that, he started back toward the front line. He hadn't gone far before the Algarvian woman screamed. It sounded more like outrage than anguish. Whatever it was, it was none of his business. He kept walking. When he returned to the encampment at suppertime, no one had been into or out of the regimental commander's tent since he'd left. "You should have heard what he called me when I asked him if he needed any- thing an hour ago," Vartu said. "Is the redhead still screaming in there?" Talsu asked. Dzirnavu's ser- vant shook his head. Talsu sighed. Maybe she'd seen screaming did her no good. Maybe, too, she was in no shape to scream any more. From what he knew of Dzirnavu, he found that more likely. He stood in line for supper. If Dzirnavu was skipping a meal for the sake of his pleasure, it wouldn't hurt him a bit. No sound at all came from the tent. Eventually, Talsu rolled himself in his blanket and went to sleep. Dzimavu's tent was still quiet when Talsu woke up the next morning. When Vartu cautiously asked whether the count wanted breakfast, no W 158 Harry Turtledove one answered. Even more cautiously, the servant stuck his head in through the flap. He recoiled, clapping a hand to his mouth. He choked out one word: "Blood!" Talsu dashed toward the tent. So did everyone else who'd heard Vartu There lay the naked and unlovely Count Dzirnavu, half on the bed, hal off, his throat cut from ear to ear. Blood soaked the sheets and the groun4 below. There was no sign of the Algarvian woman, no sign she'd eve been d-lere but for the lengtii of rope tied to each bedpost. "An assassin!" Vartu gasped. "She was an assassin!" No one argued with him, not out loud, but expressions were elc quent. Talsu's guess was that Dzirnavu had fallen asleep because of h exertions, the woman had managed to work a hand free, and then ha found a tool to take her revenge. He did wonder how she'd managed t escape afterwards. Maybe she'd been able to sneak past the sentries. C maybe, in exchange for silence, she'd given out some of what Dzirnav had taken by force. Any which way, she was gone. Smilsu had the last word. He saved it till he and Talsu were headir up to the front: "Powers above, the Algarvians wouldn't want to murdi Dzirnavu. They must have hoped he'd live forever. Now we're liable 1 get a regimental commander who knows what he's doing." Talsu coi sidered that, then solemnly nodded. Garivald's worn leather boots squelched through mud. The fall rai in southern Unkerlant turned everything into a swamp. Spring, when winter's worth of snow melted, was even worse - though the peasant d not think of it that way. The weather did what it did every year. F Ganivald, it was simply part of life. As a matter of fact, he was on the whole pleased with the way the ye had gone. King Swernmel's inspectors had gone away and not cor back, and no impressers had arrived in their wake. The villagers of Zos& had got in the harvest before the rains came. Waddo the obnoxious fir, man had fallen off the roof while he was rethatching it, and had brok his ankle. He was still hobbling around on two sticks. No, not such a b year after all. The pigs approved of the year, too, or at least of the rain. The whc village might have been a wallow for them now. They approved Garivald, too, when he threw them turnip tops from a wicker bask( ns or ~ar ne en ~ad I INTo THE DARKNESS 159 The only trouble was, each seemed to think its neighbors had got a better selection of greens, which made for snortings and snappings and loud grunts and squeals. Garivald had grain for the chickens, too. The chickens did not like rain, as their draggled feathers attested. A lot of them had taken shelter inside one peasant's house or another. Some of them were making a racket and a mess inside his house. If they annoyed his wife enough, Annore would avenge herself with hatchet and chopping block. When the blizzards came, all the animals would crowd into the houses. If they didn't, they'd freeze to death. The warmth they gave off helped keep the villagers alive, too. After a while, the nose stopped noticing the stink. Garivald chuckled. Had those hoity-toity inspectors come in win- ter, they would have stuck their noses into any old house, taken one whiff, and fled back to Cottbus with their tails between their legs. Synivald was playing in the mud when Ganivald got back to his family's house. "Does your mother know you're out here?" he demanded. Syrivald nodded. "She sent me out. She said she was sick of the way I was driving the chickens crazy." "Did she?" Ganivald let out a grunt of laughter. "Well, I believe it. You drive your mother and me crazy sometimes, too." Syrivald grinned, mistaking that for a compliment. Rolling his eyes, Garivald ducked inside. Even with Syrivald out get- ting filthy, the chickens remained in an uproar. Leuba was crawling around on the floor, doing her best to catch them and pull out their tall feathers. Gaiivald's little daughter thought that great sport; the chickens had a different opinion. "You're going to get pecked," Annore warned Leuba. Two years from now, Leuba might, on a good day, pay some attention to a warning. Now she didn't even understand it. Her mother's toile might have meant something, but not when she was intent on her game. "Ma-ma!" she said happily, and went right on after the closest chicken. The chickens were a lot faster than she was, but she had a singlemincled determination they lacked. Ganivald was heading toward her to pick her up when she did manage to grab a hen by the tail. The hen let out a furious squawk. An instant later, Leuba started crying: Sure enough, it had pecked her. 160 Harry Turtledove "There, see what you get?" Ganivald scooped her off the groun Leuba, of course, saw nothing of the sort. As far as she was concerne she'd been having a high old time, and then one of her toys unaccou ably went and hurt her. Garivald examined the injury, which was min "I expect you'll live," he said. "You can stop making noises like branded calf" Eventually, she did settle down, not so much because he'd told her as because he was holding her. When he set her down again, she start after the nearest chicken. This time, luckily for her and the fowl, it spi her and escaped. "She's a stubborn thing," Garivald said. Annore looked at him sidelong. "Where do you suppose she gets that Ganivald grunted. He didn't think of himself as stubborn, except ins far as a man had to work hard to scrape a living from the soil. "What's dinner tonight?" he asked his wife. "Bread," she answered. "What's left oflast night's stew is still in the po peas and cabbage and beets and a little salt pork thrown in for flavor." "Any honey for the bread?" he asked. Annore nodded. He grunte again, this time in satisfaction. "Well, that won't be too bad. And the ste was good last night, so it should be good again today." He sat down o a bench along the wall. "Get me some." Annore had been stuffing guts with ground meat for sausages. She se aside what she was doing, got a bowl and a spoon, went over to the iro pot hanging above the fire, ladled the bowl full, and brought it t Garivald. Then she went back to the counter, tore off a chunk of blac bread, and carried that and the honey pot over to him, too. He broke the bread, dipped some in the honey, and ate it. Anno went back to work. Garivald spooned up some of the stew, then ate another piece of bread. "In the cities," he said, "they make fancy flour so they can have white bread, not just black or brown." His broad shoulders went up and down in a shrug. I wonder why they bother. By what hear from people who've eaten it, it's no better than any other kina." "City people will do anything to be in fashion," Annore said, an Gari'vald nodded. People in the farrming villages where most Unkerla lived were deeply suspicious of their urban cousins. Annore went on, glad we live in the same way our grandparents did. Why borrow trouble?" Garivald nodded again. "That's right. I'm not sorry there aren't any ley INTo THE DARKNESS und. med, ount- nor. like a her to started t spied that?" t inso- at's for the pot: or. grunted the stew own on She set the iron t it to of black Annore then ate flour so shoulders y what I kind." said, and erlanters on, "I'm trouble?" n't any ley 161 lines close by, or that Waddo hasn't been able to put a crystal in his house. what can you hear on a crystal? Only bad news and orders from Cottbus." ,, Orders from Cottbus are bad news," his wife said, and he nodded once more. "Aye. If somebody there could tell Waddo what to do without com- ing here, Waddo would just up and do it, no matter how hard it was on the village," he said. "Waddo's one of those people who kicks every arse below him and kisses every arse above him." He waited for Annore to answer. She didn't; she was peering through tiny gaps in the shutters drawn tight against the rain. After a moment, she opened them wide so she could see better. Surprise in her voice, she said, "Herpo the spice man's here. I wonder what possessed him to come in the middle of the rains." "Some of those people just have itchy feet - they go when and where they choose," Ganivald said. "Never could see the sense of it myself-, I've always been happy to stay right where I am." But he finished eating in a hurry, while Annore was plopping Leuba in her cnib and putting on her own rain cape and hat. They started to go out together to see Herpo. Leuba squalled angrily. Annore gave a martyred look and went back to pick up the baby. Half the people in the village were out to see Herpo. Despite what Garivald had said about not wanting a crystal nearby and about being content where he was, he craved the news and gossip the spice seller had, and he was far from the only one. And Herpo had news: "We're at war again," he said. "Who is it now?" somebody asked. "Forthweg?" "No, we already fought Forthweg," somebody else said, and then, doubtfully, "Didn't we?" "Let Herpo speak his piece," Garivald said. "Then we'll know." "Thank you, friend," the spice man said. "I will speak my piece, and then I'll hold my peace. We are at war with" - he paused dramatically - the black people up in Zuwayza." He pointed north. "Black people!" a granny said scornfully. "Save your lies for folks who believe them, Herpo. Next thing you know, you'll tell us we're at war with the blue people over there or the green people over there." Laughing at her own wit, she pointed first to the east and then to the west. But a gray-haired man said, "Nay, Uote, these black men are real. 162 Harry Turtledove There were a couple of 'em in my company in the Six Years' War. Brav enough, they were, but would you believe it, they had to learn to wea clothes. Their country is so hot, they said, that everybody there goes bar naked all the time, even the women." He smiled, as at the memory o something pleasant he hadn't thought of in a while. Uote's face looked like curdled milk. "You shut up, Agen! The ve idea!" she said. Gan*vald wasn't sure whether she disapproved of Agen' having the nerve to tell her she was wrong or of people - especia women - running around naked. Probably both, he thought. Herpo said, "I don't know about this naked business myself, but know we're fighting 'em. I expect we'll lick 'em pretty cursed quick, too just like we did the Forthwegians." He looked at Uote out of the come of his eye. "You going to tell me the Forthwegians ain't real, too?" She looked as if she wished he weren't real. Instead of answering him though, she showered more abuse on Agen. He was the one who' embarrassed her in front of her fellow villagers. He bent his head and It her curses run off him like the rain. Under the wide brim of his hat, he was grinning. "Along with the news," Herpo said, "I've got cinnamon, I've got cloves, I've got ginger, I've got dried pepper that'll make your tongue think it's on fire, and all for cheaper than you'd ever guess." Garivald had tasted fire peppers a couple of times, and didn't fancy them. He bought a couple of quills of cinnamon and some powdered gin- ger and slogged back to his house. Herpo was still doing a brisk busin when he left. "Those will perk up the winter baking," Annore said when he showed her what he'd bought. Leuba had calmed down by then, and was after the hens again. His wife went on, "What was this great news? I was making the baby shut up, so I didn't get to hear it." "Nothing very important." Garivald gave another shrug. "We're at war again, that's all." Istvan walked along the beach on the island of Obuda. Scavengers had taken most of the meat from the skeleton of the Kuusaman dragon that had fallen. It skull stared at him out of empty eye sockets. He bared his teeth in a fierce gnin; a Gyongyosian might feel fear, but he wasn't sup- posed to show it. INTo THE DARKNESS 163 A lot of the dragon's fangs were missing. Some of Istvan's comrades wore one or more as souvenirs of having thrown back the Kuusamans. More, though, had sold them to the Obudans. Since the islanders did not know the art of dragonflying, they had an exaggerated notion of how much magic it required and how potent a talisman a dragon's tooth was. Chuckling, Istvan scaled a flat stone into the sea. Anyone who'd ever shoveled dragon shit would know better. He had. He did. The Obudans, in their ignorance, didn t. He wondered if he should have used the stone to knock out a couple of the remaining fangs for himself After a moment, he shrugged and kept on walking down the beach. Money mattered little to him here on Obuda; he couldn't buy much with it. And the women, he'd heard, wouldn't out out for draLyon's teeth: it was their menfolk who wanted theni A wave ran farther up the gently sloping sand than most of its fellows. He had to skip aside to keep it from splashing his boots. It still wasn't very big. Out on the sea, Obudan fishing boats bobbed. Their sails were dyed in bright colors to make them visible from a long way off. Watching the wind vush them along bemused Istvan. He'd never imagined such a thing, not while he was growing up in a mountain valley. The Bothnian Ocean was calm now, but he'd never imagined what it could be like in a storm, either. Then the waves leapt like wild things and went down the beach only sullenly, as if they wanted to drag Obuda down under the water with them. They seemed to have teeth then, great white teeth of foam that soupht to tear chunks out of the land. He shook his head - he was getting as foolish as the Obudans. Their language had endless words to name and describe different kinds of waves. Gvonpvosian like anv sensible sDeech made do with one. Snow now, Istvan thought, snow was something worth describing in detail. But the Obudans seldom sa snow. A red and yellow and black shell caught Istvan's eye. He stooped and picked it up. Obuda boasted any number of colorful snail shells, all with different patterns. He didn't think he'd seen this one before. Back in his valley, snails had plain brown shells. The only good thing he had to say about those snails was that thev made fine eatinLy when fried with zarlic Conu*n down from the barracks on the slo es of Mt Soron had been 164 Harry Turtledove easy. Going back up took more work, even though the climb wasn't to steep. Leaving the beach and returning to the barracks also transforme Istvan from tourist back into soldier, a transformation he would just a soon not have made. Sergeant Jokal descended on him like a mountain avalanche. "Goo to have you back with us, your splendiferous magnificence," the vetera sergeant growled. "Now you can go fix your bunk the way the ar taught you, not the way your mama taught you - if she was the one wh taught you, and not some goat in a pen." Istvan fought to keep his face expressionless. By main force of will, h succeeded. Gyongyosians did not keep goats, reckoning them unclea because of their eating habits and their lasciviousness. Had Jokal offere Istvan such an insult in civilian life, it would have started a brawl if not clan feud. But the sergeant was Istvan's superior - thus his effective cla senior - and so he had to endure. I am very sorry, Sergeant," he said in a voice as empty as his features "I thought I left everything in good order before I went on my morn ing's leave." Jokal rolled his eyes. "Sorry doesn't get the cart out of the mud Thinking doesn't get the cart out of the mud, either, especially whe you're not good at it - and you're not. A week's labor policing up dragon pens might do a better job of keeping your tiny little mind o what it's supposed to be doing. If it doesn't, we'll find something re interesting for you." "Sergeant!" Istvan said piteously. Jokai had come down on him before but never like this. Something else had to be irking the sergeant, Istv thought. Whatever it was, Jokai was taking it out on him. He could, to because he had the rank. "You heard me," he said now. "A week, and thank the stars it isn' more. A mountain ape could have done a neaterjob here than you did. Arguing more would only have got Istvan in deeper. With a sigh, he went into the barracks to inspect and repair the damage. None Z)f hi comrades wanted to look at him. He understood that. If they showe him any sympathy, Sergeant Jokal might land on them with both fe too. As Istvan had expected, pulling straight a tiny crease in his blanket took but an instant. Had Jokal been in a decent humor, he wouldn't even hav INTo THE DARKNESS t as )od he lean -red ~ot a clan ires. :)rn- and. rhen the fore, ;tvaii too, on ally isn't h, he if his iwed feet, took have 165 noticed it. Maybe his emerods were bothering him. He was likely to have big emerods, because he was certainly a big ... Istvan sighed. He could think Sergeant Jokai as much of a billy goat as he liked, and it wouldn't change a thing. All that mattered was thatJokal was a sergeant and he wasn't. Jokai inspected the repairs, then grudgingly nodded. "Now report to Turul. He'd better give you a good character at the end of the week, too, or you'll wish you'd never been bom." Istvan was already inclining in that direction. Jokal added, "And I'll have my eye on you, too - don't think I won't. Do you understand what I'm telling you, soldier?" "Aye, Sergeant." Istvan said the only thing he possibly could. Jokal stomped off. Istvan hoped he would find someone else with whom to be furious. Misery loved company. Besides, he might get stuck with less work that way. Turul cackled like a laying hen when Istvan came slouching up to him. I was waiting for Jokal to find somebody to give me a hand with the beasts," the old dragonkeeper said. "How'd he happen to choose you this time?" "I was there," Istvan answered bitterly. "That'll do, that'll do," Turul said. "Now you're here. The world won't end, even if it will stink for a while. And after you've been on this duty for a bit, you won't hardly even notice that." "Maybe you don't," Istvan said, at which the dragoinkeeper laughed again. Istvan didn't think he'd been joking; after so much time around quicksilver and brimstone, dragon fire and dragon dung, how could Turul have any sense of smell left at all? At the moment, Istvan's own sense of smell was working altogether too well to suit him. He and Turul stood downwind of the pens of the dragon farm. Along with the brimstone reek of their fodder and drop- pings, he also inhaled the strong reptilian musk that was their own distinctive scent. Two of the beasts, both big males, began hissing and then shrieking at each other. They reared up and spread their wings, each trying to look as enormous and impressive as he could. The chains that secured them to their iron tethering posts rattled and clanked. Other dragons started hissing, too. Through the growing commotion, Istvan asked, "Can they break loose? Will they start flaming?" He knew 166 Harry Turtledove he sounded anxious. He couldn't help it. From everything he could se anxiety made perfect sense. "They'd better not," Turul said indignantly. He picked up an iro shod goad, similar to the ones dragonfliers used but with a longer handl and advanced on the closer male. The dragon swiveled its unlovely he on its snaky neck and stared at him out of cold golden eyes. In spite of h protective clothing, it could have flamed him to a cinder. It did nothing of the sort. He shouted at it, a shout without words with strong overtones of the shrieks dragons aimed at one another. T1 male hissed and flapped its wings; Istvan wondered why the blast of win from them didn't knock Turul over. The old dragonkeeper shouted again. He whacked the dragon on tl end of its scaly nose with the goad. And, as a big fierce hound will yie to a pampered lapdog that learned to dominate it when it was a puppr so the dragon, trained from hatchlinghood to obey puny men, subside now. Istvan admired Turul's nerve without wanting to imitate it. Th dragonkeeper picked his way between pens and walloped the other co tentious dragon, too. A tiny puff of smoke burst from its mouth. Tu hit it again, harder this time. "Don't you do that!" he yelled. "Don't yo even think of doing that! You do that when your flier tells you, not a other time. Do you hear me?" "ack! Evidently, the dragon did hear him. It crouched down, almost like puppy that knew it had made a mess in the house. Istvan watched fascination. Turul sent a few more yells at it, these wordless. Only aft he was sure he'd established his mastery did he stamp back towar Istvan. "I didn't think they were smart enough to obey like that," Istvan s "You really made them behave themselves." "Smart hasn't got a whole lot to do with it," Turul answer "Dragon's aren't very smart. They never were. They never will be. . these bastards are is trained. They're almost too stupid to be trained, toG. If they were. we couldn't fly 'em at all. We'd have to hunt 'em down kill 'em, same as we do with any other vermin. Curse me if I don't some times think that'd be for the best." "But you're one of the people who do train them," Istvan exclai "Would you want to be out of a job?" INTo THE DARKNESS ut py, ed The on- urul you any ke a d in after ards said. ered. What too. n and some- aimed. 167 "Sometimes," Turul said, surprising Istvan again. "You put in so much work training dragons, and what do you get back? Shit and fire and screeches, that's all. If you didn't train 'ern so hard, the cursed things'd eat you. Oh, I'm good at what I do, and I make no bones about it. But when you get right down to it, lad, so what? Even a horse, which isn't the smartest beast that ever came down the pike, will make friends with you. A dragon? Never. Dragons know about food and they know about the goad, and that's about it. It wears thin now and again, that it does." "What would you do if you weren't a dragonkeeper?" Istvan asked. Now Turul stared at him. "Been a while since I thought about that. I don't rightly know, not now. I expect I'd have ended up a potter or a carpenter or some such thing. I'd be settled down in some little town with a fat wife getting old like me, and children, and maybe - likely - grandchildren by now, too. Don't have any get I know of, not unless my seed caught in one of the easy women I've had down through the years." Again, Istvan had got more answer than he'd bargained for. Turul liked to talk, and didn't look to have had anyone to listen to him for a while. Istvan asked another question: "Would that have been better or worse than what you have now?" "Blaze, how do I know?" the old dragonkeeper said. "It would have been different, that's all I can tell you." The net of wrinkles around his eyes shifted as they narrowed. "No, it's not all I can tell you. The other thing I can tell you is, there's lots and lots of dragon dung out there, and it won't go away by itself Put on your leathers and get to it." "Oh, aye," Istvan said. "I was just waiting for you to finish up here." That was close enough to true to keep Turul from calling him on it. With d stifled sigh, he went to work. Hajaj stood in front of the royal palace in Bishah, watching a parade of Unkerlanter captives shambling past. The Unkerlanters still wore their rock-gray tunics. They looked astonished that the Zuwayzin had cap- tured them instead of the other way round. Being herded by naked Zuwayzi soldiers seemed as demoralizing to them as being jeered by naked Zuwayzi civilians. Following the captives came Zuwayzi soldiers marching in neat ranks. The civilians cheered them, a great roar of noise in which HajaJ delight- edly joined. It picked him up and swept him along, as if it were the surf 68 Harry Turtledove coming up the beach at Cape Hadh Faris, the northernmost spit of land in all Derlaval. A woman turned to him and said, "They're pretty ugly, these Unkerlanters. Do they wear clothes because they're so ugly: to make sure no one can see?" "No," the Zuwayzi foreign minister answered. "They wear clothes because it gets very cold in their kingdom." He knew the Unkerlanters and other folk of Derlavai had more reasons for wearing clothes than the weather, but, despite his study and his experience, those reasons made no sense to him, and surely would not to his countrywoman, either. As things turned out, he might as well have not bothered speaking. The woman followed her own caravan of thought down its ley h "And they're not just ugly, either. They're pretty puny fighters, to Everyone was so afraid of them when this war started. I think we can beat them, that's what I think." Plainly, she did not know to whom she was speaking. H~jjaj said only, "May the event prove you right, milady." He was glad - he was delighted - the Zuwayzin had won their first engagement against King Swemmel's forces. Unfortunately for him, he knew too much to have an easy time thinking one such victory would translate into a victorious war. Only few times in his life had he wished to be more ignorant than he was. This was another of those rare occasions. Another swarm of captives tramped glumly past the palace. Pe cursed them in Zuwayzi. The older men and women in the crowd, those who'd been to school while Zuwayza remained a province of Unkerlant cursed the captured soldiers in rock-gray tunics in their own languagi., The old folks had had Unkerlanter rammed down their throats in the classroom, and plainly enjoyed using what they'd been made to leam. More Zuwayzi troops followed, these mounted on camels. From the reports that had come into Bishah, the camel niders had played a major part in the victory over Unkerlant. Even in the somewhat cooler south4 Zuwayza was a desert country. Camels could cross terrain that defeated horses and unicorns and behemoths. Appearing on the Unkerlanters' flank at the critical moment, the niders had thrown them first into co fusion and then into panic. Someone tapped HaJjaJJ on the shoulder. He turned and saw it was o of King Shazli's servants. Bowing, the man said, "May it please y le se nt, ge. the the on- one our INTo THE DARKNESS 169 Excellency, his Majesty would see you in his private reception chamber directly the parade is ended." HaJjaJ returned the bow. "His Majesty's wish is my pleasure," he replied, courteously if not altogether accurately. "I shall attend him at the time named." The servant nodded and hurried away. As soon as the last captured egg-tosser had trundled past the palace, Ha~aj ducked inside and made his way through the relatively cool dim- ness to the chamber where he so often consulted with his sovereign. Shazli awaited him there. So, inevitably, did cakes and tea and wine. HajaJ enjoyed the rituals and rhythms of his native land; to him, Unkerlanters and Algarvians always moved with unseemly haste. There were times, though, when haste was necessary even if unseemly. Shazli felt the same way. The king broke off the polite small talk over refreshments as soon as he decently could. "How now, Hajjaj?" he said. "We have given King Swemmel a smart box on the ear. Whatever the Unkerlanters aim to extract from us, we have shown them they win have to pay dearly. We have shown the rest of the world the same thing. May we now hope the rest of the world has noticed?" "Oh, aye, your Majesty, the rest of the world has noticed," HaJaJ replied. "I have received messages of congratulations from the iministers of several kingdoms. And each of those messages ends with the warning that it is but a personal note, and not meant to imply any change of policy on the part of the minister's sovereign." "What must we do?" Shazli asked bitterly. "If we march on Cottbus and sack the place, win that get us the aid we need?" HajJaJ's voice was dry: "If we march on Cottbus and sack the place, the Unkerlanters will be the ones needing aid. But I do not expect that to happen. I did not expect such good news as we have already had." "You are a professional diplomat, and so a professional pessirmist," Shazli said. HajaJ inclined his head, acknowledging the truth in that. His sovereign went on, "Our officers tell me the Unkerlanters attack with less force than they expected. Maybe they were trying to catch us by surprise. Wherever the truth lies there, they failed, and have paid dearly for failing." "Swemmel has a way of striking before he is fully ready," HaJjaJ replied. "It cost him in the war against his twin brother, it made him start the pointless war against Gyongyos, and now it hurts him again." , 170 Harry Turtledove "Only against Forthweg did striking soon serve him well," Shazli sai "Algarve did most of the hard work against Forthweg," HajaJ sai "All Swernmel did there was jump on the carcass and tear off some me This is, of course, also what he seeks to do against us." "He has paid blood," Shazli said, sounding fierce as any warrior prin in Zuwayza's brigand-filled history. "He has paid blood, but has no to show for it." "Not yet," HaJjaJ said. "As you say, we have blooded one Unkerlant army. Swernmel will send others after it. We cannot gather so many in together, try as we will." "You do not believe we can win?" The king of Zuwayza look wounded. "Win?" Hajaj shook his graying head. "Not if the Unkerlanters pe sist. If any of your officers should tell you otherwise, tell him in retu that he has smoked too much hashish. My hope, your Majesty, is that can hurt the Unkerlanters enough to keep more of what is ours than th demand, and not to let them gobble us down, as they did before. Ev that, I judge, will not be easy, for has not King Swernmel shouted he ai to rule in Bishah?" "The generals do indeed speak of victory," Shazli said. HajaJJ bowed in his seat. ",You are the king. You are the ruler. Y are the one to decide whom to believe. If my record over the years caused you to lose faith in me, you have but to say the word. At my a I shall be glad to lay down the burdens of my office and retire to home, my wives, my children, and my grandchildren. My fate is in yo hands, as is the kingdom's." No matter what he said, he did not want to retire. But he did not wa King Shazli carried away by dreams of glory, either. Threatening to resi was the best way HaJjaJ knew to gain his attention. If the ploy failed then it failed, that was all. Shazli was a young man. Dreams of glory root in him more readily than in his foreign minister. To HajaJJ's way thinking, that was why the kingdom had a foreign rminister. Of'co Shazli might think otherwise. "Stay by my side," Shazli said, and HajaJ inclined his head in obe ence - and to keep from showing the relief he felt. The king went on, shall hope my generals are right, and shall bid them fight as fiercely a cleverly as they can. If the time comes when they can fight no more INTo THE DARKNESS 171 shah rely on you to make the best ternis with Unkerlant you may. Does that suit you?" "Your Majesty, it does," HaJjaJ said. "And 1, for my part, shall hope the officers are right and I wrong. I am not so rash as to reckon myself infallible. If the Unkerlanters make enough mistakes, we may indeed emerge victorious." "May it be so," King Shazli said, and gently clapped his hands in the Zuwayzi gesture of dismissal. Hajaj rose, bowed, and left the palace. When he was sure no one could see him, he let out a long sigh. The king still had confidence in him. Without that, he was nothing - or nothing more than the retired diplomat he had said he might want to become. He shook his head. Whom else could King Shazli find to do such a goodJob of lying for the kingdom? One of the privileges the foreign minister enjoyed was a carried at his beck and call. Hajaj availed himself of that privilege now. "Be so good as to take me home," he told the driver, who doffed his broad-brimmed hat in token of obedience. Hajaj's home lay on the side of a hill, to catch the cooling breezes. Bishah had few cooling breezes to catch, but they did blow in spring and fall. Like many houses in the capital, his was built of golden sandstone. Its wings rambled over a good stretch of the hillside, with gardens among them. Most of the plants were native to Zuwayza, and not extravagant of Water. The majordomo bowed when Hajaj went inside. Tewfik had been a family retainer longer than Hajaj had been alive; he was well up into his elahties, bent and wrinkled and slow, but with wits and tongue still unimpaired. "Everyone's still going mad with celebrating, eh, lad?" he croaked. He was the only man alive who called HajjaJ lad. "Even so," the foreign minister said. "We have won a victory, after all." Tewfik grunted. "It won't last. Nothing ever lasts." If anything refuted that, it was himself. He went on, "You'll want to see the lady Kolthoum, then." It was not a question. Tewfik did not need to make it a question. He knew his master. And HajaJ nodded. "Aye," he said, and followed the majordomo. KolthoUlD was his first wife, the only person in the world who knew him better than Tewfik. He'd wed Hassila twenty years later, to cement a clan ~6 172 Harry Turtledove tie. Lalla was a recent amusement. One day before too long, he'd have decide whether she'd grown too expensive to be amusing any more. For now, though, Kolthoum. She was embroidering with one Hassila's daughters when Tewfik led Hajaj into the room. One loo her husband's face and she told the girl, "Run along, jamila. I'll show more about that stitch later. Right now, your father needs to talk -V me. Tewfik-" "I shall fetch refreshments directly, senior wife," the majordomo s "Thank you, Tewfik." Kolthoum had never been a great beauty, had put on flesh as she aged. But men paid attention to her because of voice, and also because she made it very plain that she paid attentio them. As soon as Tewfik shuffled away, she said, "It's not as good as crystal makes it sound, is it?" "When is anything ever as good as the crystal makes it sound?" H returned. His senior wife laughed. He went on, "You aren't the only who thinks it is, though, and you have friends in high places." He t her about his conversation with King Shazli, and about what he'd ha do; when speaking with his wife, he did not need to wait through ritual of tea and wine and cakes. "A good thing he didn't take you up on it!" Kolthoum said ind nantly. "What would you do, underfoot here all day? And what wo we do, with you underfoot here all day?" Hajaj laughed and kissed her on the cheek. "Powers above be prai that I have a wife who truly understands me." "Well, of course," Kolthoum said. Fernao had visited Yanina a couple of times before what news she in Setubal were calling the Derlavaian War broke out. Unless his memo had slipped, Patras, the capital, hadn't been so frantic then. Yaninans frantic - or, at least, they looked that way to foreigners - but they seemed less on edge then. Of course, he thought, being a small kingdom sandwiched bitwe Algarve and Unkerlant went a long way toward helping to make a fo frantic. Having King Penda of Forthweg cooped up somewhere in t] royal palace couldn't have helped matters, either, not with King Swe breathing down King Tsavellas's neck to get his hands on Penda. And so broadsheets sprouted on every wall. Fernao couldn't re INTo THE DARKNESS 173 them; the Yaninans used a script all their own - as much to be difficult as for any other reason, as far as the Lagoan mage was concerned. But they were full of pictures of soldiers and dragons and red ink and the punctu- ation marks for excitement and urgency that a lot of scripts shared. If they didn't mean something like LOOK OUT! WE'RE GOING TO BE IN A WAR! - if they didn't mean something like that, Fernao understood nothing of symbols. Two Yaninans were quarreling on the plank sidewalk in front of the doorway to the shop Fernao wanted to enter. They were going at it ham- mer and tongs, getting madder by the minute. In Fernao's ears, Yaninan sounded like wine pouring out of a jug too fast, glug, glug, glug. He knew only a handful of phrases of it; it wasn't a tongue closely related to any other. A crowd gathered. Arguing and watching arguments seemed to be the Yaninan national sports. Men in tunics with pufFy sleeves and tights and women with kerchiefs on their heads egged on the two combatants. At last, one of the skinny, swarthy men grabbed the other's bushy side whiskers and yanked. With a shriek, the second man hit the first in the belly. They grabbed each other and rolled into the street, clawing and gouging and cursing. The crowd surged after them. With a sigh of relief, Fernao slid through the now vacant door-way of the gourmet-foods shop. Varvakis supplied King Tsavellas with delica- cies; selling him a shipment of smoked Lagoan trout gave Fernao an innocuous reason for coming to Yanina. The foodseller spoke fluent Algarvian, for which Fernao gave thanks. 'Just another day," the mage remarked, pointing to the commotion outside. "Oh, indeed," Varvakis answered. He was a short, bald man with a big black mustache and the hain'est ears Fernao had ever seen. Fernao's irony went past him; as far as he was concerned, it was just another day. Patras was like that. Fernao glanced around the shop. Varvakis did business with the whole world. jars of Algarvian liver paste stood beside hams and sausages from Valmiera, Jelgavan wines next to Unkerlanter apricot brandy, Kuusarnan lobsters and oysters by chewy strips of dried conch from Zuwayza, nuild red peppcrs from Gyongyos alongside fiery ones out of tropic Siaulia. The inage pointed to some large brown dried leaves he didn't recognize. "What are those?" Id sed een folk the mel read 174 Harry Turtledove "I just got them in, as a matter of fact," Varvakis answered. "The from one of the islands of the north, I forget which one. The na crumble them in a pipe and smoke them like hashish. But they speed up instead of slowing you down, if you know what I mean." "That might be interesting," Fernao said. "But now-" Befor could get down to business, a plump woman with a distinct must walked in. Varvakis fawned on her. They walked over to a bin of p and had a long discussion of which Fernao followed not a word. woman finally condescended to buy a few ounces' worth. Varvakis her a couple of coppers in change with the air of a man conferring a k dom-saving loan upon his sovereign. Femao let out a muffled snort. more than Algarvians, Yaninans overacted. "But now-" Varvakis said when the plump woman had Yaninans also had - and needed - a gift for picking up the threa interrupted conversation. "But now, my friend, I have, or think I good news for you. A steward of my acquaintance tells me that-' bowed himself double when a man came in and went over to exa the lobsters. At the prices he was charging for them, only a rich cust could have afforded any. Fernao quietly fumed till the transaction done. A steward of your acquaintance tells you what?" the mage a when Varvakis remembered he was there - he was learning to ha multiple interrupted conversations, too, although not to enjoy the some exasperation, he added, "Could you let a clerk handle peopl we're done here?" "Oh, very well." The fancy grocer sounded testy. "But custo want to see me. They come to deal with me." He puffed out his chest pride - and with air, which he used to shout, "Gyzis!" The clerk eme from the back room, wearing a leather apron over a Yaninan-style p sleeved tunic. Grudgingly, Varvakis put him in charge of the front shop and took Fernao into the back room. More delicacies lined the shelves there, some injars, others kept in rest crates. "About this steward-" Fernao prompted. "Aye, aye, of course." Varvakis's eyes flashed. "Do you take me halfwit? For a price, he says, he can get you in to see King Penda - Penda can moan that he's pining for smoked trout. What you do you see Penda, I know nothing about. I wish to know nothing abou hey're natives eed you fore he stache f prunes ord. The akis gave g a king- ort. Even ~I,ACN ki". threads of nk I have, that--2' He to examine ch customer saction was mage asked g to handle oy them. In e people till ut customers his chest with lerk emerged -style puff~- e front of the ers kept fresh take me for a enda - maybe t you do once ing about it." INTo THE DAR-KNESS 175 He held an arm in front of his head, so that his sleeve drooped down and covered his eyes. "I understand that," Fernao said patiently. "Money shouldn't be any trouble." By all the signs, Shelomith had money coming out of his ears. He'd given Fernao a goodly sum, and he'd given Varvakis a goodly sum, too: Varvakis did not strike the mage as a man who would be very co- operative without a well-greased palm. He proved that again, saying, "What I give to Cossos does not come from my fee. It will be redeemed." "k -,tzmvz NN~-Oj xvzk~ kkt money. "Set up the meeting. Pay whatever you have to pay. 'We will -f e~=)Duyst N ou." Nayw'V~ys "M "Go, *itn. 'I I= of here. We should not be seen together. When the meeting is arranged, you will hear from me. You will also hear how much you owe. You will pay before you see Cossos." Was that the edge of a threat? Probably. Varvakis could pocket the money and let Fernao walk into a trap. For that matter, he could pocket it and set up a trap for Fernao. The unpleasant possibilities were almost endless. Back at the nondescript - indeed, dingy - hostel where he and Fernao were staying, Shelomith waxed enthusiastic. "This is just the chance we need!" he said, clapping Fernac, on the back. "I knew that, sooner or later, one of my contacts would survey a ley line to his Majesty for us." Fernao mentally substituted I hoped for I knew. Aloud, he said, "Whatever this Cossos wants, he won't work cheap." Shelomith only shrugged. They were staying at a hostel less than of the finest to keep from drawing notice to themselves. Shelomith had plenty of gold -just how much, Fernao didn't know. Plenty for all ordinary and most extra- ordinary purposes, that was certain. And so, with Varvakis along as a go-between, Fernao approached King Tsavellas's palace a couple of days later. Yaninan architecture ran to tall, thin watchtowers and to onion domes, all very exotic to a practical Lagoan. The guards at the entrance wore tights with red and white stripes and red pornpoms on their shoes, but looked tough and determined despite the absurd costume. Recognizing Varvakis, they bowed in greeting, and accepted Fernao because he accompanied the purveyor of fancy foods. 176 Harry Turtledove Paintings on the walls showed Yaninan kings with odd domed crown long somber faces; and robes so thick with gold and silver threads, the had to be almost too heavy to wear. Other paintings celebrated th triumphs of Yaninan arms. judging by those paintings, Yanina had neve lost a battle, let alone a war. judging by the map, those paintings didn tell the whole story. "We can talk here," Cossos said, escorting Fernao and Varvakis into small chamber. Like Varvakis, he spoke good Algarvian. The Yaninan had learned a great deal from their eastern neighbors. Not all the lesson had been pleasant. Varvakis said, "The two of you talk. What you talk about, I don't w to hear. if I don't hear it, I don't have to tell lies about it." He bowed fi to Femao, then to Cossos, and departed before either of them could s a word. "No stones to that man," Cossos remarked, tossing his head in Yaninan gesture of scorn. He was about forty-five, wiry, shrewd looking, with a nose like a swordblade. "Now, my friend, what can I d for you?" "I doubt I am your friend," Fernao said. "If all goes well, I may b your benefactor, though." "That will do well enough," Cossos said briskly. "I ask you once agai what can I do for you?" Fernao hesitated. Here was where the jaws of the trap might close o him. If someone besides Cossos was listening ... If that was so, Ferna might find out more about the dark places of Yanina than he ever wante to know. He could not sense anyone listening, but he could not gaug whether Yaninan wizards were masking a spy from his powers, either. But he had not come here to be cautious. Taking a deep breath, h said, "I would like half an hour alone with Penda of Forthweg, with n one to know I have come to see him. I also require your studied forge fulness that you ever arranged such an appointment for me." "Studied forgetfulness, eh?" Cossos bared his teeth in What was almos but not quite, a smile of genuine amusement. "Aye, I can see how yo would. Well, I can manage that. In fact, I'd better, or my head woul answer it, after the other. But it'll cost you." He named a sum in Yanina lepta. After Fernao converted it into Lagoan sceptres, he whistled softly INTo THE DARKNESS :o a ns ns in a wd- I do y be gain: sc on ~rnao anted gauge her. th, he ith no orget- Imost, W you would aninan softly. 177 Cossos did not think small. But Shelomith had gold aplenty. "Agreed," the mage said, and Cossos blinked, evidently having expected him to haggle. Femac, added, "I will take any oath you like that I mean Penda no harm." Cossos shrugged. "It'd cost you less if you did mean him harm," he said. "King Tsavellas wouldJust as soon see him dead. Then he wouldn't have to worry about him any more. Bring me the money and-" "I'll bring you the first half," Fernao broke in. "The other half comes afterwards, in case you'd just as soon see me dead." Cossos bared his teeth. Fernao stood firm against all his complaints, saying, "You need a reason not to betray me," In the end, grumbling, the steward gave in. Well pleased with himself, Femao headed back to the hostel. Shelomith would pay without blinking; he was sure of that. He was less sure he could walk out of the palace with Penda and with no one the wiser, but he thought so. Lagoan mages knew more than those in this benighted comer of the world. He'd already had a couple of good ideas, and more would come to him. He rounded the last comer and stopped dead. Green-uniformed con- stables surrounded the hostel like ants at an outdoor feast. A couple of them carried a body out on a litter. Fernao knew it would be Shelomith's before he got close enough to recognize it, and it was. The constables were laughing andjoking, as if they'd found treasure. They probably had found treasure - Shelomith's treasure. Femao gulped. Now all he had was the money in his own pouch, and he was alone and friendless in a foreign town. Dragons swooped low over Trapani. Marching in the triumphal proces- sion through the streets of the Algarvian capital, Colonel Sabriino hoped none of the miserable beasts would choose the moment in which it flew over him to void. Long and intimate experience informed his rmistrust of dragons. No sooner had that thought crossed his mind than he had to step smartly to keep from putting his foot down on a pile of behemoth dung. Squadrons of the great beasts were interspersed among the marching troops, to give the swarms of civilians who packed the sidewalks some- thing extra at which to cheer. Sabn*no marched with his shoulders back, his head up, his chin thrust forward. He wanted everyone who saw him to know he was a fierce fighting man, one who would never take a step back from the foe. Algarvians; made much of appearances. And why not? Sabriino thought. Have the mages not proved that appearances help shape reality? He also wanted people, especially pretty women, to notice. He was happy with his wife, he was happy with his mistress, but he would not have been broken-hearted had some sweet young thing adoringly cast herself at his feet. No, he would not have been broken-hearted at all. Whether he would find himself so lucky after the end of the parade, he did not know. He was pretty sure a good many soldiers would, though. Women kept running out to kiss them as they tramped past. A lot of the cheers that washed over them weren't the sort of cheers soldiers usually got. They sounded more like the ones excited followers usually gave popular balladeers or actors. Behind Sabriino, Captain Domiziano must have been thinking alo 178 INTO THE DARKNESS hrust erce fo e. ught. e was d not ringly ted at arade, ould, past. A oldiers usually g along 179 similar lines, for he said, "If a man can't get laid today, sir, it's only because he's not trying very hard." "You're right about that," Sabrino answered. "You are indeed." He kept eyeing women, though he told himself that was foolish: the ones he passed here would be long gone by the time the parade ended. But his eyes were less disciplined than his mind - or, to put it another way, he enjoyed watching regardless of whether or not he could do anything but watch. People held up signs saying things like GOODBYE, FORTHWEG! and ONE DOWN, THREE TO GO! and ALGARVE THE INVIN- CIBLE! It hadn't been like that in the Six Years' War, Sabriino remem- bered. The kingdom had fought only reluctantly then. Now, with her neighbors declaring war on her after she had done no more than retrieve what was rightfully hers, Algarve was united behind King Mezentio - and behind the army that had won this triumph. The parade ended at the royal palace, men and behemoths tramping by under the balcony from which King Mezentio had announced that Algarve was at war with Forthweg and Sibiu, Jelgava and Valmiera. Mezentio stood there now, reviewing the troops who had won such a smashing victory. Sabriino doffed his hat and waved it in the direction of his sovereign. "Mezentio! " he shouted at the top of his lungs, his cry one of hundreds, thousands, aimed at the king. Around the palace to the far side, the side opposite the Royal Square and also out of sight of the crowd, the triumphal procession disintegrated. Behemoth ri'ders took their beasts off through alleys so narrow, they had to go in single file. Martinets led their companies and regiments back toward their barracks. Officers with more heart gave their men liberty. The released soldiers hum*ed back toward the Royal Square to see what arrangements they could make for themselves. Sabrino had just turned his men loose, and was about to follow them back toward the square and try his luck when someone tapped him on the shoulder. He spun, to find himself facing a man in the green, red, and white livery of a palace servant. "You are the Count Sabriino?" the servitor asked. "I am," Sabriino admitted. "What do you desire of me?" Before answering, the servant made a mark on the list, probably checking off his name. Then he said, "I have the honor, my lord, of inviting you to a reception in an hour's time in the Salon of King 180 Harry Turtledove Aquilante V, wherein his Majesty shall express his gratitude to the nobility for supporting him and Algarve during our present crisis." "I am honored," Sabrino said, bowing. "You may tell his Majesty that I shall certainly attend him." He wondered if the servant even heard; the fellow had already turned away to look for the next man on his list. He must have assumed Sabrino would accept the invitation. And why not? Who in his right mind would refuse a summons from his sovereign? Sabriino hurried toward the nearest palace entrance. Guards there unsmilingly examined his uniform, his dragonflier's badge, and his badge of nobility. They ticked off his name as the servitor who'd tendered him the invitation had done. Irritated, Sabrino snapped, "I am not a Sibian spy, gentlemen, nor a Valmieran assassin, either." "We believe you, my lord," one of the guards said. "Now we believe you. Pass on, and enjoy the pleasures of the palace." Sabrino knew his way to the Salon of King Aquilante V; he had attended several other gatherings there. Nonetheless, he did not object when a serving woman stepped forward to guide him. He would have liked it even better had she guided him to her bedchamber, but walking along flirting with her was pleasant enough. "Count Sabrino!" a herald cnied in a great voice when he entered the salon. To his disappointment, the pretty serving girl went off to escort someone else. Faithless hussy, he thought, and laughed at himself Tables piled high with refreshments stood against one wall. He took a glass of white wine and a slice from a round of flatbread piled high with melted cheeses, salt fish, eggplant slices, and olives. Thus equipped, he sallied forth on to the social battlefield. Naturally, he did his best to put himself in the way of King Mezentio, who circulated through the reception hall. Being a resourceful man he, soon succeeded in drawing the king's notice. "Your Majesty!" and bowed low enough to gladden a protocol officer, s heart spilling a drop of wine or losing a single olive from his flatbread "Powers above, straighten up!" Mezentio said irritably. "Do yo I'm King Swemmel, to need all that head 'u tj -knocking nonsense? He thi s it makes people afraid of him, but what does an Unkerlanter knowi Nothing to speak of - Unkerlanters grow like onions, with their heads ii) the ground." INTo THE DARKNESS 181 "Even so, your Majesty," Sabriino said, nodding. "If only there weren't so many of them." "By the harnhanded way he's fighting that war against Zuwayza, Swernmel is doing his best to make them fewer," the king answered. "And my congratulations, by the way, on how well you and your wing fought above Wihtgara. I was very pleased by the reports I read of your exploits. " "I shall pass on your praise to my dragonfliers," Sabrino said with another bow. "They, after all, are the ones who earned it for me." "Spoken as a good officer should speak," Mezentio said. "Tell me, Count, in your fighting above Forthweg, did you find many of Kaunian blood opposing you on dragons painted in Forthwegian colors?" "Speaking solely from my own experience, your Majesty, that's hard to say," Sabriino replied. "One often doesn't get close enough to the foe to see exactly who he is. When the dragons fly high, going up there's a chilly business, too, so the men who fly them are often bundled against the cold. I'm given to understand, though, that the Forthwegians set a good many obstacles in the way of Kaunians who seek to fly dragons, the same as they do against Kaunian officers of any sort." "I know for a fact that last is true." Mezentio frowned. "Curious how the Forthwegians look down their beaky noses at the Kaunians inside their own borders, but follow like lapdogs when the Kaunians in the east seek to savage us." "They've paid for their folly," Sabrino said. "Everyone who harms Algarve shall pay for his folly," Mezentio declared. "Everyone who has ever harmed Algarve shall pay for his folly. We lost the Six Years' War. This time, come what may, we shall win." "Certainly we shall, your Majesty," Sabrino said. "The whole world is jealous of Algarve, of what we are and of the way we've pulled ourselves up by the bootstraps even after everyone piled on to us in the Six Years' War." "Aye, the whole world is jealous - the whole world, and especially the Kaunian kingdoms," Mezentio said. "You mark my words, Count: those yellow-haired folk still hate us for destroying their cozy little empire more than a thousand years ago. If they could kill us all, they would. Since they can't, they seek to crush us so we may never rise again." "It won't happen." Sabriino spoke with great sincerity. 182 Harry Turtledove "Of course it won't," Mezentio said. "Are we as stupid Unkerlanters, to let them scheme and plot to destroy us without mak plans of our own?" The king laughed. "And the Unkerlanters are stu indeed, with Swernmel always bellowing 'Efficiency!' at the top of lungs and then blundering into one idiotic war after another." He tur away from Sabrino toward a noble who stood waiting to be recogniz "And how are you, your Grace?" Sabrino went back for another goblet of wine. That was more t than he'd enjoyed with the king in any other meeting. And Mezentio only knew who he was - which he'd expected - but also where his w had served - which he hadn't. He didn't fight to gain royal notice, he wouldn't turn down royal notice if it came his way. He drifted through the room, greeting men he knew, flirting serving women and the companions of nobles who happened to liv Trapani, and keeping his ears open for gossip. There was plenty; the o trouble was, he didn't always know to what it referred. When one wh goateed general said to another, "We have only to kick in the door the whole rotten structure win come crashing down," what door wa talking about? Whoever was standing behind it wouldn't care to hav kicked in on him. Of that Sabri'no was certain. A commodore in naval black spoke to a colleague: "Well, this ou to set the history of warfare on the sea back about a thousand years." Laughing, his friend answered, "They pay off on what you do. T don't pay off on how you do it." Then he noticed Sabrino was listen Whatever he said after that was in a voice too low for the dragonflie hear. Annoyed at having been caught, Sabrino took himself elsewhe A woman put a hand on his arm. She wasn't a servant; the green of silk tunic was darker than that of the national banner, and she wore gold and emeralds than a servant could even have dreamt of As Alga women sometimes did, she came straight to the point: "My frie drunk himself asleep, and I don't want to go back to my flat alone." He looked her up and down. "Your friend, my dear, is a fool.'Tell your name. I want to know whose fool he is." "I am Ippalca," she answered, "and you are the famous Count Sab the man in all the news sheets." "My sweet, I was famous long before the news sheets ever hear me," Sabrino said. "When we get back to your flat, I will show I as INTc) THE DARKNESS vitb e in Duly and is he ve it ught rhey ning. ~er to 011 ine brino, ~ard of N YOU 183 why." Ippalca laughed. Her eyes glowed. Sabrii no slid an arm around her waist. Together, they left the Salon of King Aquilante V. "Efficiency." Leudast made the word into a curse. It had already doomed a lot of Unkerlanter soldiers. He looked around. After the homelike fields of western Forthweg, this Zuwayzi waste of sunbaked rock and blowing sand seemed a particularly cruel joke. He checked his water bottle. It was full. He'd filled it at the last water hole, only half a mile or so south of where he was now. The Zuwayzin hadn't poisoned that one. He'd seen men drink from it, and they'd taken no harm. The naked black savages hadn't missed many water holes, They weren't perfectly efficient themselves -just far too close for comfort. Sergeant Magnulf trudged by. His boots scuffed through sand. His shoulders slumped, ever so slightly. Even his iron determination, which had never faltered during the war against Gyongyos, was wearing thin here. "Tell me again, Sergeant," Leudast called to him. "Remind me why King Swemmel wants this land bad enough to take it away from anybody. Remind me why anybody who's got it isn't happy to give it to the first fool who wants it." Magnulf looked at him. "You need to be more efficient with your. mouth, soldier," he said tonelessly. "I know you didn't mean to call King Swernmel a fool, but somebody else who was listening might get the idea you did. You wouldn't want that to happen, would you?" Leudast considered. If they arrested him for disloyalty to King Swcmmel, they'd take him out of this Zuwayzi wilderness. He wouldn't have to worry about black men who wanted to blaze him - or, as arrny runior had it, to cut his throat and drink his blood. On the other hand, he would have to worry about Swernmel's interrogators. He might escape the Zuwayzin. The interrogators ... no. "Thank you, Sergeant," he replied at last. "I'll watch what I say." "You'd better." Magnulf wiped his forehead on the sleeve of his tunic. The Unkerlanters called the tunic's color rock gray, but it didn't match any of the rocks hereabouts, which were various ugly shades of yellow. That also struck Leudast as inefficient, but he kept his mouth shut about it. Magnulf went on, "I'll even answer your question. The king wants this land back because it used to belong to Unkerlant, and so it ought to again. 184 Harry Turtledove And the Zuwayzin don't want us to have it on account of it blocks our path toward better country farther north." "is there better country farther north?" Leudast asked, again speaking more freely than he should have. "Or does this nuiserable desert go on forever?" "There's supposed to be better country," Magnulf said. "I suppose there must be better country - otherwise, the Zuwayzin couldn't raise so many soldiers against us." That made sense. Along with the rest of the men in his company, Leudast slogged north. Thornbushes grew here and there among the rocks. Very little else did. Very little lived here, either - snakes and scor- pions and a few little pale foxes with enormous ears. Scavenger birds circled overhead, their wings looking as wide as those of dragons. They thought the Unkerlanter army would come to grief in the desert. Leudast remained far from sure they were wrong. He tramped past a dead behemoth. The big beast hadn't been blazed; its corpse bore no mark he could see. Maybe it hadjust keeled over from trying to haul the weight of its armor and weapons and riders through the desert. Since he felt like keeling over himself, Leudast knew a certain amount of sympathy for the poor brute. The army had its own scavengers; they'd already taken away the ironmongery the behemoth had carried on its back. Magnulf pointed. "There's the line," he said: Unkerlanters crouching and sprawling behind stones, blazing away at the Zuwayzin who blocked their path. As Leudast got down behind a rock himself so he could crawl forward, one of his countrymen shrieked and clutched at his shoulder. This terrain was made for defense. A handful of men could hold up an army here - and had. "Come on, you reinforcements, take your places," an officer shouted. "We'll get those black bastards out of there soon enough - see if we don't." He ordered some of the soldiers already in line forward to flank out the Zuwayzin who'd stalled the advance. Leudast blazed away at the rocks behind which the enemy sheltered. He had no idea whether his beams hit anyone. At the least, they made the Zuwayzin keep their heads down while his comrades slid around by the night flank. But more Zuwayzin waited on the right. They hadn't been blazing, perhaps hoping to draw the very attack the officer had commanded. They broke it. After a few minutes, Unkerlanters came streaming back to the main line, some of them helping wounded comrades escape the enemy's beams. When the Zuwayzin attacked in turn, the Unkerlanters threw them back. That cheered Leudast - till he heard an officer say, "We're the ones who are supposed to be moving forward, curse it, not the black men." "Tell it to the Zuwayzin - maybe they haven't heard," somebody not far from Leudast muttered. That struck him as dangerously inefficient speech, but he wasn't inclined to report it. For the moment, he was con- tent to be able to hold his position and not have to retreat. He swigged from his water bottle. That wouldn't last indefinitely, and, except for the known water holes, the dowsers hadn't had any luck find- ing new supplies. Leudast found himself unsurprised: if no water was out there to find, the best dowsers in the world couldn't find it. That meant the army had to depend on the familiar holes and on what ley-line cara- vans and animals could bring for-ward. By the knots of mages Leudast had seen working along the ley lines, the Zuwayzin had done their best to make them impassable. That did nothing to add to his peace of mind. And then he stopped worrying about such minor details as perhaps dying of thirst in a few days. Off to the left, the west, eggs smashed against stone. Leuclast automatically hugged the ground. Hard on the heels of those roars came exultant cn'es in a language he did not know and despaining ones in a language he did: "The Zuwayzin! The Zuwayzin are on our flank!" "Camels!" Sergeant Magnulf used the word as vilely as Leudast had used efficiency before. "Bastards snuck around our cavalry again." He bit out a few curses of a more conventional sort, then gathered himself "Well, no help for it." He looked westward to gauge how close the attackers were. "Fall back!" he shouted. "Fall back - form a line so we're not enfiladed any more. Whatever happens, we have to hang on to that water hole back there." He was thinking about water, too, though in a more immediate sense than Leudast had been. In this sun-baked country, not thinking about water was impossible. No doubt the Zuwayzin were also thinking about it, and making for that water hole themselves. At least Magnulf was thinking, which seemed to be more than any of the Unkerlanter officers could say. INTo THE DARKNESS 185 186 Harry Turtledove Leudast scrambled back toward a stone that offered good shelte against attack from the west. As happened whenever a force found itsel outflanked, some soldiers panicked and fled toward the rear. As ofte happened when they did, they paid the price for panic: Zuwayzi beam cut dicni down. Howling with triumph, the Zuwayzin stormed forward. Leudas blazed a black man who showed too much of himself Several othe Zuwayzin also went down, dead or shrieking in pain. Then the enem] started flitting from rock to rock again, having learned a good manj Unkerlanters still held fight. More eggs crashed down around Leudast. The Zuwayzin must hav taken apart some light tossers and carried them on camelback. Sand an( shattered rock pelted him. He wanted to claw a hole in the ground, juml in, and pull the hole shut over him. He couldn't. And, if he stayed curlec up behind this rock, the Zuwayzin could move forward and blaze him a their leisure. Understanding that wds easy. Making himself get up on one knee and blaze at the enemy was much harder, but he did it. He thought he wounded another Zuwayzi, too. But he could not stay where he was any more, for the Zuwayzin were still advancing. He slipped away to another stone, and then to another. "We have to save the water hole!" an officer shouted, realizing only now what Magnulf had seen at once. "If we lose that water hole, we lose our grip on this whole stretch of desert." He shouted orders pulling more men from what had been the advance and shiffing them to the turned flank. It wasn't going to be enough. Leudast could see it wasn't going to be enough. The Zuwayzin could see it wasn't going to be enough, too. They knew what forcing the men of Unkerlant away from the water hole would mean. They were more clever than the Gongs, probably more clever than the For-thwegians, too. When they struck, they struck hard, and straight for the heart. Leudast wondered if he had enough water to make it back to ihe next clean hole. It was, he knew, a long way to the south - a dreadfully long way, if a man was retreating with the enemy nipping at his heels. Maybe he could fill up the bottle before the black men reached this water hole. More eggs fell - but these fell on the Zuwayzin. Dragons overhead had INTo THE DARKNESS 187 made the scavenger birds fly off. As the dragons wheeled, he saw their upper bodies were painted rock-gray: the color Unkerlant used. Now he shouted in triumph and the Zuwayzin in dismay. Unkerlanter egg-tossers well back of the line began adding their gifts to the ones the dragons were delivering. A man in a rock-gray tunic took shelter behind the rock next to Leudast's. "How's it look, soldier?" he asked, an officer's sharp snap in his voice. "Not too bad, sir - not now," Leudast answered, glancing over at the newcomer. That tunic was one a common soldier might have worn, but the collar bore a large star. Leudast's eyes widened. Only one man in Unkerlant was entitled to wear that emblem. "Not too bad, my lord Marshal," he corrected himself, wondering what a man like Rathar was doing at the front. Rathar answered that question without his asking it: "Can't find out what's going on if I don't see for myself "Uh, aye, sir," Leudast said. The marshal hadn'tj'ust come to see. He'd come to fight, and carried a stick like any other footsoldier's. He used it, too, popping up to blaze at the Zuwayzin. Of course, he'd fought in the Six Years' War and the Twinkings War, which meant he'd been around combat longer than Leudast had been alive. His happy grunt had to mean he'd got a beam home. Looking around, Leudast saw Rathar had also brought his crystallo- mancer with him. The marshal barked out a stream of orders, which the mage relayed to his colleagues back with the reserves. Those orders sent men and egg-tossers and dragons up toward the battle. Anyone who dis- obeyed them or delayed by even a heartbeat speedily regretted it. For the first time since plunging into the Zuwayzin desert, Leudast began to feel hope. Up till now, the Unkerlanters' campaign had been b=gled. Listening to Rathar's crisp commands, he didn't think the bungling would go on much longer. It was Count Brorda's birthday, a holiday in Gromheort. An Algarvian dwelt in Brorda's castle these days, but he hadn't bothered canceling the holiday. Maybe he hadn't wanted to antagonize the Forthwegians over whom he sat in judgment, although Ealstan had a hard time imagining an Algarvian who cared a fig about what the folk of Gromheort thought. I I Harry Turtledove More likely, the occupiers were just too lazy to bother changing what they'd found when they overran the city. Whatever the cause, Ealstan was glad to escape school. He'd grown as sick of Algarvian irregular verbs as he had been of their classical Kaunian equivalents. And besides, the first fall rains had brought out the mush- rooms. Forthwegians were mad for mushrooms - not surprising, when so many good ones grew in their kingdom. They ate them fresh, they ate them dried, they ate them pickled, they ate them in salads, they ate them with olives: they ate them with any excuse, or none, Markets were always full of mushrooms, but Ealstan, like most Forthwegians, was convinced the ones he picked himself were better than any he could buy. Like most Forthwegians, he knew the differences between the edible varieties and the ones that were poisonous; like his schoolmasters, his father had operated on the principle that a warmed backside made blood flow more freely to the brain. And so, armed with a cloth sack, he sallied forth with his cousin Sidroc to see what he could find. "It will be good to get out of the city," Sidroc said. Lowering hi: voice, he went on, "It will be good to get away from the cursed redheadi too. "I won't say you're wrong, because I think you're right," Ealstan salij "I just hope they let us out. AN their checkpoints are still up." But the Algarvian soldiers at the checkpoint on the west side of to'A seeing the sacks they carried, waved them through. "Mushrooms?' soldier asked. Ealstan and Sidroc nodded. The Algarvian stuck out tongue and made a horrible face to show what he thought of them. spoke in his own language. His comrades laughed and nodded. T didn't fancy mushrooms, either. "More for us," Ealstan said as soon as he was out of earshot of guard who spoke Forthwegian. Sidroc nodded again. Before long, the two cousins split up. That way, they would br wider assortment of mushrooms back to the house they still shared. way, too, they wouldn't quarrel if they both spotted a fine one same time. They'd quarreled over mushrooms before, more than Now they knew better. Every so often, Ealstan would see someone else digging in a fie] INTo THE DARKNESS hi~ ds, aid. hey the or at n, a his He the base of a tree. He didn't offer to go and help any of these people. Some folks loved to chat and share. Rather more, though, were inclined to be surly, to say nothing of greedy. He learned that way himself If a pretty girl came along and wanted to give him a hand, he Might let her. He laughed at himself He liked the idea, but knew better than to find it likely. He worked his way north, getting his shoes soggy and his knees dirty. One of the reasons he enjoyed hunting mushrooms - aside from the plea- sure of eating them later - was that he never knew ahead of time what he'd find. He tossed a few meadow mushrooms into his sack, just to make sure he didn't come home empty-handed. They were good enough, but no better than good enough. Chanterelles were better than good enough. He picked some egg- yellow ones because of their fine flavor, and some vermilion ones because his father enjoyed them, even if he himself found them acrid. Then, in some open woods he found a clump of orange Kaunian Imperial mush- rooms. He studied them with care before plucking them from the ground; they were related to death caps and destroyers, both deadly poi- sonous. Only after he made sure they were safe did they go into the sack. They would be delicious. And he felt like cheering when he stumbled upon an indigo milky mushroom. It wasn't one of his favorites as far as flavor went, but his mother always clapped her hands when he came home With one because the exotic color made any dish in which she used it more interesting. Then he came to a stand of trees with oyster mushrooms and ear mushrooms growing on their trunks, especially on the southern sides where sunlight did not reach them. The oyster mushrooms were partic- ularly fine: fresh and grayish white, not old and tough and yellow. He went from tree to tree picking all he could; some grew higher than he could reach, even by jumping. He wondered what Sidroc would bring home - probably a mix altogether different from his. He was so intent on harvesting those mushrooms, he didn't notice anyone else was picking from the same stand of trees tin they came round from opposite sides of the same big oak and almost bumped into each other. Nearly dropping his sack of mushrooms, Ealstan jumped back in surprise. So did the other gatherer, a Kaunian girl not far from his own age. 190 Harry Turtledove They both laughed shakily. "You startled me," they both said at the sa time, with identical pointing forefingers. That made them laugh again "There are plenty for both of us," Ealstan said, and the girl nodde She rmight have been a year or so older than he was. Doing his best n to be too obvious about it, he eyed her figure, which her Kaunian-s tight tunic and trousers revealed in more detail than the long, loose tuni Forthwegian women wore. The knees of those trousers were dirty; she come out for the same reason he had, all right. "Aye, there are." She nodded again. She was looking at his dirty knee too. Then, suddenly, she pointed to the sack he carried. "What have y got in there? Maybe we can trade a little, so we each have more differe kinds." Kaunians in Forthweg were no less fond of mushrooms than any oth Forthwegians. "All right," Ealstan said. He grinned at her and dug o some of the orange mushrooms he'd found. "What will you give me those Kaunian Imperials here? They ought to suit you." She studied him before answering, her blue eyes hooded. Kaunians, h knew, got touchy if you said what they thought was the wrong thing, even the right thing in the wrong tone of voice. He must have passed th test, for she nodded and showed him some dull brown mushrooms fro her sack. "I found these horns of plenty under dead leaves, if you'd li some of them." "All n*ght," he said again, and they made the trade. He went on, "Yo must have had sharp eyes to spot them. Sometimes you can walk throu a big patch and never even know it, because they're the same color as th leaves." "That's true. I've done it." The Kaunian amended her words with th precision of her people: "I've done it a couple of times and then see them, I mean. Who knows how many times I've done it without eve noticing?" After that, they started talking about mushrooms and, almost coinci dentally, about themselves. He found her name was Vanai, and that s lived in Oyngestun; she'd come east to hunt mushrooms, while he' gone west from Gromheort. "How are things there?" he asked. "Are t redheads any better than they are in the city?" "I doubt it," Vanal answered bleakly. She added a word in Kau word Ealstan knew: "Barbarians." Kaunians sometimes applied tha INTo THE DARKNESS 191 to Forthwegians. Hearing it slapped on the Algarvians made Ealstan chuckle and clap his hands together. Vanal looked sharply at him. "How much Kaunian do you speak?" she asked in that language. "What I have learned in school," he said, also in Kaunian. It was the first time he'd ever been glad he'd paid attention to his lessons. Only a couple of hours before, he'd laughed at himself for imagining he might meet a pretty girl while out picking mushrooms. Now he'd gone and done it, even if she was a Kaunian. "You speak well," she said, falling back into Forthwegian. "Not quickly, as you would your birthspeech, but well." Ealstan appreciated the praise all the more because she measured it so carefully. "Thank you," he said. Then he remembered the Algarvian soldier taking obscene liberties with the Kaunian woman in the rubble- clearing gang back in Gromheort. It suddenly occurred to him, almost with the force of getting spellstruck, that being a pretty girl could carry disadvantages. He picked his words with care, too: "I hope they haven't ... insulted you." Vanal needed only a moment to understand what he meant. "Nothing too bad," she said. "Shouts, jeers, leers - nothing I haven't known from Forthwegians." She turned red; with her fair skin, the blush was easy to see. "I don't mean you. You've been perfectly polite." "Kaunians are people, too," Ealstan said, repeating a phrase his father was fond of using. Ealstan sometimes wondered if that was why his father used it. Kaunians had dwelt in Forthweg since the days of their ancient Empire, even if Forthwegians greatly outnumbered them these days. His own distant ancestors had known nothing of stone keeps and theaters and aqueducts when they entered this country. He wondered if one of the reasons they despised Kaunians was that, somewhere down deep, Kaunians made them wonder if they were people themselves. "Well, of course," Vanai said. But it wasn't ofcourse, and they both knew it. A lot of Forthweglans didn't think of Kaunians as people, and a lot of Kaunians returned the favor. Vanai changed the subject: "Your brother, you said, is a captive? That must be hard for your family. Is he well?" "He says he is well," Ealstan replied. "The Algarvians only let their captives write once a month, so we've not heard much. But he is alive, powers above be praised." He didn't know what he would have done had he learned Leofslg was dead. 192 Harry Turtledove He was about to add something more when, from not far away, a in,, called out in Kaunian: "Where are you, Vanai? Look! I've found a- Whatever he'd found, it wasn't a word Ealstan knew. Ealstan wonder( if he'd found trouble himself Was that Vanai's father? Her brothe Maybe even her husband? He didn't think she was old enough to we, but he might have been wrong, disastrously wrong. Then Vanal answered, "Here I am, my grandfather," and Ealstan worry eased: a grandfather seemed unlikely to be dangerous. Nor did ti man who came up a minute later look dangerous. He carried a fat puf ball in his left hand; puffiall, no doubt, was the Kaunian word Ealsta hadn't understood. In Kaunian, Vanai said, "My grandfather, this Ealstan of jekabpils" - the classical name for Gromheort. "We haN traded mushrooms." She shifted to Forthwegian: "Ealstan, here is in grandfather, Bri'vibas." Bri'vibas looked at Ealstan as if he were a stinkhorn or a poisonOL leopard mushroom. "I hope he has not troubled you," he said to Van, in Kaunian. He was, Ealstan saw at a glance, one of those Kaunians wh~ automatically thought the worst of Forthwegians. "I have not troubled her," Ealstan said in the best Kaum*an he had. It was not good enough; Brivibas corrected his pronunciation. Vano looked mortified. Making a point of speaking Forthwegian, she said, "H has not troubled me at all. He speaks well of our people." Her grandfather looked Ealstan up and down, then looked her up an( down, too. "He has his reasons," Bnivibas said. "Come along with me. Wi must wend homeward." "I will come," Vanai said obediently. But then she turned back "Goodbye, Ealstan. The talk was pleasant, and the trade was good." "I also thought so," Ealstan said in Kauman. "I am glad I met you - and you, sir," he added for Brivibas's benefit. That last was a he, but on( of the sort his father called a useful lie: it would show up the oldej Kaunian's rudeness. Vanal would see it. Even Brivibas imight. He didn't. He stomped off toward the west, toward Oyngestun. Vanai followed. Ealstan watched tin trees hid her from sight. Then he started back in the direction of Gromheort. He laughed to himself The day had ended up a lot more interesting than it would have been had he spent it hunting mushrooms with Sidroc. F I ck. u - one Ider anai rted had nt it INTo THE DARKNESS 193 "Well, this is more like it," Talsu said to whomever would listen as the jelgavan forces pushed through the eastern foothills of the Bratanu mountains. Before long, he thought, he and his comrades really would get past the foothills and down into the plains of southern Algarve. If things kept going well, they'd be able to start tossing eggs into Tn'can*co. He wished the Forthwegians had put up a better fight against the red- heads. Then their army would have Joined the one of which he was a tiny part and cut Algarve in half That had been the plan - well, the hope - when jelgava went to war. Now King Donalitu and his allies would have to' settle for less. Smilsu banged Talsu in the ribs with his elbow. "Which do you mean is more like it? Having a colonel who knows what he's doing or moving forward instead of standing around all the time?" "You don't think there's a connection?" Talsu returned. "I'm not the one to ask," his friend said. "Why don't you find out what Vartu over there thinks about it?" "I'm still here," Vartu said, grinning a leathery grin. After Colonel Dzirnavu's untimely and embarrassing demise, his servant might have gone back to the family estate to tend to the needs of Dzimavu's heir. He'd chosen to stay on as a common soldier instead. What that said about the character of Dzirnavu's son was a point on which Talsu preferred not to dwell: how unfortunate that the new count should take after the old. Vartu went on, "There's one of the reasons I'm still here, too." He pointed to one side with his chin. "Come on, men, keep moving," Colonel Adomu called cheerily. He was a marquis himself, but wore the title more lightly than most jelgavan nobles. He was Just in his early forties, and not only kept up with the soldiers in his regiment but urged them to a better clip. "Keep moving - and spread out. We don't want the cursed redheads to hit us when we're all bunched together." Even marching in loose order, Talsu was nervous. The Algarvians had harvested these fields before their soldiers retreated through them, and the low stubble left behind offered little concealment for a prone man, let alone one up and walking. Algarvian civilians had fled along with the soldiers, and taken their livestock with them. But for the sound of boots crunching through dry grass and stubble and the occasional rustle of leaves in the breeze, the day was eerily quiet. Harry Turtledove Colonel Adomu. pointed to a pear orchard half a mide away. "That's where they'll be waiting for us, the sons of a thousand fathers. We'll have to see if we can find a way to flank them out - going straight at them win be too expensive." Talsu dug a finger in his ear to make sure he'd heard night. Dzirnavu would have sent his men lumbering straight at the redheads. They'd have p'd f al or it, too, but that wouldn't have bothered Dzirnavu. Well, now he'd paid for it himself Adomu sent the company to which Talsu belonged off to the right, to find a way around the pear orchard. "Come on, step it up," Talsu called to Smilsu as they trotted along. "The faster we move, the harder we are to hit." "We're hard to hit anyway, at this range," Smilsu answered. "You have to be lucky to blaze a man with a footsoldier's stick out past a couple-three furlongs. You have to be even luckier to hurt him very bad if you do hit him." As if to make him out a liar, one of his comrades fell, clutching at his leg and cursing. But most of the Algarvians' beams went wide or had dis- persed too widely to be damaging. A couple of them started fires in the grass. That made Talsu want to cheer: Smoke weakened beams, too. But then, with a roar and a blast of fire, an egg bunied in the ground burst under a jelgavan soldier. He had time for only the beginning of a shriek before the energies consumed him. The rest of the jelgavans skidded to a halt. Talsu dug in his heels and stood panting where he was. "They don't hide those things by ones and twos," he said. "They put'em down by the score, by the hundred." All the ground on which he was not standing at the moment suddenly seemed dangerous. Had he jus trotted past an egg? If he took one step back or to either side, would he suddenly go up in a sheet of fire? He didn't want to find out. He didn't want to stay where he either. If he kept standing here, the redheads in the pear orchard woul blaze him sooner or later. He threw himself down on the ground-, an didn't touch off an egg doing it. Slowly and carefully, he crawled for ward, examining every stretch of ground before he trusted his weight t it. If it looked disturbed in any way, he crawled around it. Colonel Adomu didn't take long to notice his flanking maneuver ha slowed. Colonel Dzirnavu, had he bothered making a flanking maneuve :o INTo THE DARKNESS 195 - in itself unlikely - wouldn't have kept such close ley of it once it got going. But the energetic Adomu not only saw the slowing but realized what had caused it. He sent an egg-dowser forward to find a clear way through the stretch of ground filled with hidden peril. Talsu watched the dowser - a tall, skinny man who managed to look disheveled despite uniform tunic and trousers - with the fascination any man gives to someone who can do something he cannot. The fellow held his forked rod out before him as if it were a pike. Dowsing was an ever more specialized business these days. Talsu's ancestors had found water with it in the days of the Kauman Empire. Now people all over Derlaval dowsed for water with it in the days of the Kaunian Empire. Now people all over Derlaval dowsed for water, for metals, for coal, for rock oil (not that the latter had much use), for things missing, and everywhere and always for things desired. And soldiers dowsed for dragons in the air and for eggs hidden under the ground. "How did you learn to find bunied eggs?" Talsu called to the dowser. "Carefully." The fellow's lips skinned back from his teeth in a humor- less grin. "Now don't jog my elbow any more, or I'm liable not to be careful enough. I wouldn't like that: in my line of work, your first mis- take is usually your last one." His rod dipped sharply downward. With a grunt of satisfaction, he took from his belt a sharp stake with a bright streamer of cloth at the unpointed end. He plunged it into the ground to show where the egg lay. The soldiers in the company followed him in as near single file as made no difference as he marked out a path of safety. Snudsu said, "I wonder what happens when the Algarvians come up with a new kind of egg, or with a new way to mask the eggs they have already." He kept his voice down so the dowser wouldn't hear him. Also quietly, Talsu answered, "That's when they start teaching a new dowser how to do the job." His friend nodded. Had the Algarvians; been present in large numbers, sergeants would have needed to start teaching a lot of newJelgavan soldiers how to do the job. But the redheads could not take advantage of the way they had stalled their opponents. Before long, the dowser stopped finding eggs to mark. The company started moving faster again. The dowser went along in case the men ran into - literally and metaphorically - another trouble- some belt of land. 196 Harry Turtledove But they didn't, and soon began blazing into the pear orchard from t side. The Algarvians had been protecting themselves behind trees agair an attack from the front. And, as soon as Colonel Adomu realized flanking force finally was doing what he'd intended it to do, in went th attack from the front. That made the Algarvians stop paying so much attention to Talsu a his friends. Vartu let out a whoop, then howled, "Now we've got 'e Talsu hoped Colonel Dzirnavu's former servant was right. If he wrong, a lot of jelgavans would end up dead, Talsu all too probab among them. He howled, too, as much to hold fear at bay as for any oth reason. Then he and the rest of the jelgavans got in among the pear tre themselves, flushing out the Algarvians like so many partridges. Some the redheads, their positions overrun, threw down their sticks and thre up their hands in token of surrender. They were no more anxious to d than theirJelgavan counterparts. Smilsu cursed. "My beam's run dry!" he shouted angrily. A mome later, nothing happened when Talsu thrust his finger into the touch-ho of his own stick. Like Smilsu, he'd used up all the power in it whi reaching the pear orchard. Now, when he needed it most, he did n have it. "Where's that cursed dowser?" he called. "He can give us a hand. haven't sent all the captives to the rear yet, have we?" "No," Vartu said from behind him. "We've still got a few of them le with us." He raised his voice to a funi ous bellow, a good imitation of th of the late, unlamented (at least by Talsu) Colonel Dzirnavu: "Stake 'e out! Tie 'em down! Let's get some good out of 'em, anyway, the filt redheads." Some of the Algarvian captives understood jelgavan, either becau they came from near the border or because they'd studied classic Kaunian in school and could get the dnift of the daughter language. Th howled fearful protests. The jelgavans ignored those, flinging a coqle redheaded soldiers down on to their backs and tying their anns and le to stakes and tree trunks. "You'd do the same to us if your sticks were running low," a jel soldier said, not without some sympathy. "You know it cursed too." I i the ainst i his 'mhat and !M! " was bly her TUS ~ of rew ~ die Lent tole hile not em thy ley ~ Of Tan ell, INTo THE DAPKNEss "Where's that dowser?" Talsu called again. The fellow shambled up just then, still looking very much like an unmade bed. Seeing the spread- eagled Algarvians, he nodded. He was no first-rank mage, but he didn't need to be, not for the sorcery the Jelgavan soldiers had in mind. "Set your dead sticks on them," he said, and Talsu and the others who could not blaze obeyed. The dowser drew a knife from his belt and stooped beside the nearer Algarvian captive. He yanked up the Algarvian's chin by the coppery whiskers that grew there, then cut his throat as if butchering a hog. Blood fount i d forth Th d chanted in classical Kaunian. When he was through - and when the Algarvian soldier he'd sacrificed had quit wrii thing - some of the Jelgavans snatched up their sticks from the dead man's chest. Talsu's stick lay on the second Algarvian. The dowser sacrificed him, too. Such rough magic in the field wasted a good deal of the captives' life energy. Talsu cared not at all. What mattered to him was that enough of the energy had flowed into his stick to rechar it full As soon as the dowser nodded, he grabbed the stick and humied forward to do more fighting. It blazedjust as it should have. Before long, the two-pronged Jelgavan attack drove the Algarvians from the pear orchard. But, just as victory became assured, a cry rose from the men who'd made the assault on the front of the orchard: "The colonel's down! The stinking redheads blazed Colonel Adomu!" "Powers above!" Talsu groaned. "What sort of overbred fool will they foist on us now?" He didn't know, He couldn't know, not yet. He was afraid of finding out. Brivibas gave Vanal a severe look, as he'd been doina for the t)ast couple of weeks. "My granddaughter, I must tell you yet again that you were too forward, much too forward, with that barbarian boy you met in the woods." Vanai rolled her eyes. Bnivibas had trained her to dutiful obedience, but his carping was wearing thin. No: by now, his carping had worn thin. "AD we did was swap a few mushrooms, my grandfather. We were polite while we did it aye. You have taught me to be polite to everyone have you not?" "And would he have stayed polite to you, had I not happened to come up when I did?" Briivibas demanded. 198 Harry Turtledove "I think so," Vanai answered with a toss of her head. "He seemed p fectly well behaved - better than some of the Kaunian boys here Oyngestun." That distracted her grandfather, as she'd hoped it would. "What?" said, his eyes going wide. "What have they done to you? What have t tried to do to you?" He looked furious. Was he, could he possibly ha been, remembering some of the things he'd tried to do to girls before met Vanal's grandmother? That was hard to imagine. Even harder imagining him doing things like that u4th her grandmother. "They've tried more than that Ealstan ever did," she said. "Th couldn't have tried less, because he didn't try anything at all. He spen lot of time talking about his brother, who's an Algarvian captive." "I do pity even a Forthwegian in Algarvian hands," Brivibas said. his tone, he pitied Kaunians in Algarvian hands far more. But, again, found himself distracted, this time by a historical parallel: "The Algarvi have always been harsh on their captives. Recall how, under their chi tain Ziliante, they so cruelly sacked and ravaged the city of Adutiski He spoke as if the sack had happened the week before rather than in t waning days of the Kaunian Empire. "Well, then!" Vanal tossed her head again. "You see, you don't ne to worry about Ealstan after all." She'd made a mistake. She knew it as soon as the words were out her mouth. And, sure enough, Bnivibas pounced on it: "I would wo far less had you forgotten the young barbanian's name." Had he stopped nagging her about Ealstan, she probably would ha forgotten the Forthwegian's name in short order. As things were, looked more attractive every time her grandfather made a rude comme about him. If such a thing had happened to Brivibas during his long-a youth, it had fallen from his memory in the years since. "He was very nice," Vanal said. Even handsome, in the dark, blo Forthwegian way, she thought. Having made one mistake, she did n compound it by letting her grandfather learn of that thought. He did not need to learn of it to keep on carping. After a while, Va got tired of listening to him and went out to the courtyard around whi the house was built. She didn't stay as long as she'd thought she wou For one thing, a raw breeze made her shiver. The sun ducked in and o from behind gray, nasty-looking clouds. And the courtyard, no long INTo THE DARKNESS 199 bright with flowers as it had been through spring and summer, seemed a far less pleasant refuge than it would have been then. The alabaster bowl into which the fountain splashed was a genuine Kaunian antiquity, but it too failed to delight her. Her lip curled. Living with her grandfather was living with an antiquity. She needed no more examples. She wished she could have gone out on to the streets of Oyngestun. These days, though, with Algarvian soldiers patrolling the village, she went out as seldom as she could. The Algarvians had committed relatively few outrages: fewer, certainly, than she'd expected when they occupied the place. But she knew they could. She might speak well of a Forthwegian, but of a redhead? About Algarvians, she completely agreed with Brivibas. Why not? Indeed, how could she have done otherwise? He'd taught her. But that thought never crossed her mind, no more than the thought of water disturbed a swimming fish. "My granddaughter?" Brivibas called from his study, where they'd been quarreling. Far more slowly than he should have, he realized he'd really irked her. ff only some ancient Kaunian had written a treatise on how to bring up a granddaughter! Vanai thought. He'd do a betterjob. She didn't want to answer him. She didn't want to have anything to do with him, not just then. Instead of returning to the study, she went into the parlor through a different door. Brivibas had set his mark there, too, as he had through the whole of the house. Bookshelves almost overwhelmed the spare, classical - and none too comfortable - furniture. All the ornaments were Kaunian antiquities or copies of Kaunian antiquities: statuettes, painted pottery, a little glass vial gone milky from lying underground for upwards of a thousand years. She'd known them her whole life; they were as familiar to her as the shapes of her own fingernails. Now, suddenly, she felt like smashing them. On the wall hung a print of an old painting of the Kaunian Column of Victory in faraway Pnickule. Vanal sighed. Thinking of Kaumans vic- torious didn't come easy now. Neither did thinking of a kingdom nearly a1l Kaunian, as Valmiera was. What would living in a land where every- one looked more or less the way she did be like? Luxurious was the word that sprang to mind. The Kaunians of Forthweg, remnants left behind ~vhen the t1dc of ancient empire receded, enjoyed no such luxury. She went into the kitchen. A terra-cotta low relief of a fat little of ry go nal ich ild. Dut rer 200 Harry Turtledove demon with a big mouth and a bigger belly hung on the wall there. Her imperial ancestors had fancied the demon of appetite looked like that. Sorcerous investigation had long since proved there was no such thing as the demon of appetite. Vanal didn't care what sorcerous investigation had proved. She liked the relief Had there been a demon of appetite, he would have looked like that. Had there been a demon of appetite, he would have turned up his nose at what he saw in that kitchen. Cheese, a little bread, mushrooms, strings of garlic and onions and leeks, an ever-shrinking length of sausage ... not much to keep a spirit dwelling in a body. Brivibas hardly cared what he ate, or sometimes even if he ate. His mind ruled; his body did strictly as it was told. Vanai sometimes wished she were the same way. Her grandfather assumed she was, though he would have been angry at others who judged people using themselves as a touchstone. But Vanai enjoyed good food. That was why, as soon as she grew big enough, she'd taken over the kitchen. Till the war came, she'd done as well as she could without much money. Now ... Now there wasn't much food of any sort to be had. Ley-line caravans carried what the Algarvians told them to carry, not what the towns and villages of Forthweg needed. The redheads plundered what they would. Fighting had wrecked many farms and left many farmers dead or captive. Vanai wondered where it would end. Forthweg hadn't known famine during her lifetime, but she'd read of it. If this went on ... The wood bin and the coal scuttle weren't so full as they should have been, either. Coal, especially, was hard to come by. She might reach the point where she had food but no fuel with which to cook it. With such gloomy reflections filling her, she didn't hear Bnivibas come into the kitchen. "Ali, here you are, my granddaughter," he said. "Here I am," Vanai agreed resignedly. "I try my best to do what is right for you," her grandfather said. "I may not always be correct, but I do have your interest at heart." With no sm~ll surprise, she realized he was, in his fusty way, trying to apologize. "Very well, my grandfather," Vanal said; arguing with Brivibas was more trouble than it was worth. In any case, she would see Ealstan again only by accident. Sooner or later, Brivibas would realize that for himself, and then, with luck, he would stop bothering her. Hoping to get his te ras INTo THE DARKNESS 201 mind off the subject of the Forthwegian, she asked, "Can I cut you some bread and cheese?" "No, never mind. I have no great appetite," Briivibas said. Vanai nodded; that was true most of the time. Then, to her surprise, her grand- father brightened. "Did I tell you the news I had yesterday?" "No, my grandfather," Vanal answered. "What news is this? So little gets into Oyngestun these days, I'd be glad to hear any." "Well, I had a note from the Journal of Kaunian Studies in Jekabpils, her grandfather said, using the classical Kaunian name for Gromheort. "They tell me the Algarvian occupying authorities will allow them to resume publication before long, which means I shall have an outlet for my scholarship." "That is good news," Vanal said. If he could not publish his articles, Brivibas would grow even more peevish than usual. He would also have more leisure in which to try to oversee every facet of her life, which was nothing she wanted. "On the whole, it is good news," he said, donning an indignant expression. "The drawback is, all submissions must henceforth appear in either Forthwegian or Algarvian. Those offered in classical Kaunian, the language of learning, must be rejected unread, by order of the occupiers." Vanal shivered, though the kitchen was warm enough. "What right have the redheads to say our language is not to be used?" she asked. "The conqueror's right: the right they understand best," Bri'vibas answered bleakly. He sighed. "I have not attempted serious composition in Forthwegian for many years. Who would, with Kaunian to use instead? I suppose I must make the effort, though, if I am to continue setting my researches before any part of the scholarly community." Not setting his researches before the scholarly community plainly never occurred to him. Before Vanal could reply, shouts and the sound of running feet came ~Orn outside. She peered through the kitchen window, a narrow slit intended to give a little fresh air, not any great view: for views, all folk of Forthweg, regardless of their blood, far preferred their courtyards to the streets. She got a glimpse of a yellow-haired man running as if his life depended on his feet. And so it might have, for a couple of Algarvian soldiers pounded after him, sticks in hand. They shouted again, first in their langauge, then in Forthwegian: "Halt!" 202 Harry Turtledove One of them dropped to a knee to take dead aim at the fleeing Kaunia The fellow must have ducked around a comer before he could bla though, for he sprang to his feet once more with what sounded like a cur "Halt!" his comrade yelled again. They both pounded after the fugitive. "I wonder what he did," Vanai said. "I wonder if he did anything.' "Probably not." Her grandfather's voice was weary and bitt "Having done something is by no means a requirement for pumishme not where the Algarvians are concerned." Vanai nodded. She'd alrea seen as much for herself Bembo tramped up and down the meadow outside Tricarico's munic ipal stadium. Though the day was on the chilly side, sweat ran down hi face and threatened to leave his mustache as limp as if he'd forgotten t wax it. The constable, a pudgy man, hadn't done much in the way o marching for a good many years. Not that the drill sergeant cared. "Powers below eat all of you!" he screamed, in a temper extravagant even by Algarvian standards. "I bite my thumb at you! I bite my thumb at your fathers, if you know who they are!" From a civilian, that would have provoked a flock of challenges. But a soldier in the service of King Mezentio enjoyed even broader immu- nity from having to defend his honor than did a constable. The sergeant waved the shambling column to a halt. Bembo had all he could do not to collapse on the grass. His legs felt like overcooked noodles. He could smell himself Beneath their perfumes, he could smell the men around him. "We'll try it again," the drill sergeant grunted. "I know you're stupid, but try and work at remembering which is your left foot and which is your right. If those stinking towheads from jelgava break out of the mountains, you get to go into line to throw 'em. back. Maybe you'll be able to fool them into thinking you're soldiers, at least for a little while. I doubt it, but maybe. Now ... forward, march!" Along with the rest of the men of Tricarico dragooned into~ this makeshift militia, Bembo started marching. The jelgavans hadn't broken out of the Bradano Mountains yet, though they'd come close a couple of times. Bembo hoped the regulars could hold them. If they couldn't, if Algarve had to rely on the likes of him to fight, the kingdom was in a lot of trouble. INTo THE DAPKNEss an. blaze, e a curse. gitive. thing." d bitter. shment, d already Is munic- down his rgotten to he way of 11 he bite they enges. But der irnmu- o had all he overcooked could smell ou're stupid, nd which is out of the e you'll be a little while. ed into this adn't broken se a couple of y couldn't, if m was in a lot 203 "Left!" the drill sergeant roared. "Left! ... Left-right-left! Sound offl" "One! Two!" Bembo called, as he'd learned to do. "Sound offl" "Three! Four!" "Left-right-left!" The sergeant gathered himself for the next order: 'To the rear, march!" Raggedly, the militiamen obeyed. The drill sergeant clapped a hand to his forehead. "You don't execute commands better than that, you'll all get fornicating executed if you have to go up to the line. Aye, the jelgavans are a pack of trouser-weaning scum, but they know what they're doing, and you, you milk-fed virgins, you haven't got a clue. To the left flank, march!" The fellow puffing along beside Bembo wheezed, "I'd like to see that loudmouthed oaf try to make pastries with no training, that's all I have to say. "That's your line of work?" Bembo asked, and the pastry chef nodded. With a calculating snuile, the constable found another question: "Whereabouts in the city is your shop at?" Before his comrade could answer, the drill sergeant screamed, "Silence in the ranks! Next man who squeaks out of turn will squeak soprano for the rest of his days, do you hear me?" Bembo was convinced the whole town of Tricarico heard him. The jelgavans in the western foothills of the Bradano Mountains probably heard him, too. And the pastry chef cer- tainly heard him, for he shut up with a snap. Bembo sighed. A constable who strolled into a pastry shop would surely come away with clainties full of almond paste and sweet cream and raisins and cherries, and he wouldn't have to set a copper on the counter to get them, either. And now he wouldn't be able to find out into which shop he should stroll. Life was full of small tragedies. At last, after what seemed like forever but couldn't have been longer than half that, the drill sergeant released his captives. "I'll see you again day after tomorrow, though," he threatened, "or maybe sooner, if the enemy does break through. You'd better hope he doesn't, on account of they haven't dug enough burial plots to hold all of you lugs yet." "Cheerful bugger, isn't he?" Bembo said, but the pastry chef had already turned away. Bembo sighed again. He'd have to stay ignorant of where the fellow labored, at least till two days hence. With another sigh, he started back toward the constabulary station. He didn't get time off for 204 Harry Turtledove the militia drill; it was piled on to everything else he had to do. That struck him as monstrously unfair, but no one had asked his view of the matter. He'd received orders to report to that bellowing fiend in human shape, and he'd had to obey. A street vendor waved a news sheet. "Black men throw Unkerlanters back again!" he shouted. "Read all about it!" "Has King Swemmel started killing some of his generals yet, to per- suade the rest to fight harder?" Bembo asked. He approved of killing Unkerlanter generals - on general principles, he thought with a gnin at his own cleverness. For that matter, he approved of executions on general principles. He had trouble imagining a constable who didn't. "Buy my sheet here, and see for yourself," the vendor answered. Bembo didn't feel like buying a news sheet. He felt like having the fel- low tell him what he wanted to know. He and the vendor traded insults, more good-natured than otherwise, till he rounded a corner. A couple of men on the next street corner, one of them fair enough to have a good share of Kaunian blood, saw him coming and made them- selves scarce. He wasn't wearing his uniform tunic and k1h. Maybe one of them recognized his face. Maybe, too, both of them smelled him out as a constable even without seeing his uniform, even without recognizing his face. It wasn't quite sorcery on the part of the bad eggs, but it wasn't far removed, either. When he walked up the stairs and into the station, Sergeant Pesaro greeted him with, "Ah, here is another one of our heroes!" No one had thrown Pesaro into the militia. He might have been able to march. On the other hand, he might as readily have fallen over dead from an apoplexy. "A worn-out hero," Bembo said mournfully. "If I have to do too much more of this, I'll be a shadow of my former self " He looked down at his belly. It wasn't the size of Pesaro's, but he still made a pretty sub- stantial shadow. "You complain so much, you might as well already be in the army, not the constabulary," Pesaro said. "Oh, and you've never grumbled in all your bom days," Bembo retorted, wagging a forefinger at the fat man behind the desk. Pesaro coughed a couple of times and turned red, perhaps from embarrassment, perhaps just because he was a fat man who sat behind a desk all day: even I INTo THE DARKNESS 205 coughing was an exertion for him. Bembo went on, "I see in the news sheet that Zuwayza's giving Unkerlant another clout in the head." "Efficiency," Pesaro said with a laugh. "Don't know how long those naked burnt-skins can keep doing what they're doing, but it's pretty funny while it's going on." "So it is." Bembo hid his disappointment. He'd hoped Pesaro would tell him more than he'd heard from the news-sheet vendor. Maybe the sergeant hadn't felt like springing for a sheet today, either. Then Pesaro said, "Only trouble is, I heard on the crystal this morn- ing that we're not the only ones who think so. Jelgava and Valn-iiera have sent messages to the Zuwayzi king, whatever his cursed name is, con- gratulating him on giving King Swenimel a hard time." "Can't say I'm surpnised," Bembo answered. "When Swernmel jumped on Forthweg's back, that meant we wouldn't have to worry about our western front any more - or not about the Forthwegians there, anyway. "Oh, aye," Pesaro said. "Not that Unkerlant's any great neighbor to have. We've fought more wars with those bastards than anybody likes to remember, and it wouldn't surprise me one bit if they were thinking about another one." "That wouldn't surprise me, either," Bembo said. "Everybody's always plotting against Algarve. It's been like that since the days of the Kaunian Empire." "A lot you know about the Kaunian Empire," Pesaro said. Before Bembo could make an irate reply to that, the sergeant went on, "Talk about inefficiency - we might as well be Unkerlanters ourselves, the way we're using constables for militiamen." "Make up your mind," Bembo said. "You just called me a hero not five minutes ago." -remembered something else I heard on the crystal," Pesaro , answered placidly. "A dozen captives broke out of a camp in Forthweg, and they're on the loose in the countryside. What do soldiers know about keeping captives? About as much as constables know about fighting cam- that's what. If they're going to use constables to help the war along, they oug I ght to use us to take captives and guard them, not to blaze o~A ~AAQ ftont line. That'd be proper efficiency. " "Not a bad idea at all," Bembo said. Pesaro preened as if he were a 206 Harry Turtledove writer of romances suddenly receiving critical acclaim. With a s chuckle, Bembo added, "I never would have expected it from you." "Funny," Pesaro said. "Funny like a man walking with two cane that's what it is." He could take ribbing, could Pesaro, but only so muc Bembol evidently, had gone over the line. "Here's another idea that isn bad at all," Pesaro growled: "you getting into your uniform and doin some real work instead of hanging around and banging your gums wit me. "All right, Sergeant. All night." Bembo raised a placating hand. 'T going, l9m going." As he went, he muttered under his breath: "Fat ol fraud wouldn't know anything about real work if it paraded past hi naked. " After donning the regulation tunic and kilt, he paused in the reco ing section, where Saffa was sketching a portrait of a haggard-lookin miscreant. Bembo thought of the little artist parading past him naked definitely a more attractive prospect than real work. What he was thin ing must have shown, too, for Saffa snapped, "Drag your rmind out of th latrine, if you please." Bembo's ears heated. He glared over toward the wretch whose ima Saffa had been committing to paper. Had the fellow said a word - had h even smiled - Bembo would have taken out his rage on him. But the cap-, tive, wiser than Martusino, kept his mouth shut and his expression blank Doubly baulked, Bembo walked fuming to his desk. Plenty of forms and reports awaited him there, as was true for most constables most of the time. Bembo ignored them. He worked diligently enough when he felt like it, but not when work was forced upon him. As most Algarvians would have done, he avenged himself by disobeyin& He pulled a historical romance out of his desk and started reading. 'T show you what I know about the Kaunian Empire , he mumbled Pesaro's direction, though not loud enough for the desk sergeant anyone else - to hear. Mercenaries' Revolt, the cover screamed in lurid red letters, Vith a smaller subhead reading, Mighty Ziliante sets an empire afire! The bo showed a stalwart Algarvian, his coppery hair washed with lime to gn,c him a leonine mane, brandishing a sword. Clinging to him was a Kau doxy wearing no more clothes than she'd been born with. Her hand poised, as if about to reach under his kilt and caress what she found th INTo THE DARKNESS 207 The text lived up to, or down to, the cover. Bembo couldn't remember a romance he'd enjoyed more. The Kauman Emperor had just ordered Ziliante made into a eunuch. Bembo was sure that wouldn't happen; the virile hero had already got too many blond noblewomen's drawers down. Which of them would rescue him, and how? Bembo read on to find out. e age he ing. "I'll d in or ith a book give unian Krasta sipped cherry brandy laced with wormwood. A band thumped away in the background: tuba and accordion, bagpipes and thudding 1 kettledrum. On the dance floor, Valmieran nobles swayed and spun to the loud, insistent beat. "This is the place to be," Valnu said, leering across the table at her. "Even if the Algarvians drop eggs on Priekule, they can't knock the Cellar down. We're already underground." He giggled as if he'd said something very funny. "This is the place to be because it's the place to be," Krasta replied with a shrug. Had the Cellar been built atop the Kauman Column of Victory, she still would have frequented the nightspot. Anyone who was, or who had pretensions of being, someone came here. People who weren't someone looked on from a distance and envied. That was the way the world worked. Valnu lifted his mug of porter. "So good to find you thinking as clearly as ever." Malice flavored the affection in his voice as the wormwood embittered Krasta's sweet brandy. I hope your brother is still safe, there in the west." "He was well, last letter I had from him." Krasta tossed her head, send- ing pale gold curls flying: old imperial styles had suddenly become the rage. "But this is too much talk about the war. I don't want to think about the war." The truth of the matter was, she didn't want to think at all. "Very well." Valnu's smile turned him into the most charming skull Krasta had ever known. "Let's dance, then." He got to his feet. "All right, why not?" Krasta said carelessly. The room spun a little as she rose: that spiked brandy was potent stuff. She laughed as Valnu slid an arm around her waist and guided her out on to the floor. 208 INTo THE DARKNESS skull tle as lid an 209 Valnu was a thoroughgoing predator. His principal virtue was that he never pretended to be anything else. As he and Krasta danced, his hand slid from the small of her back to close on the smooth curve of her left buttock. He pressed her tight against him, so tight that she could not pos- sibly doubt he had more than dancing on his mind. She rMight have loosened some of his white, pointed teeth for him because of the liberties he took with her noble person. She contemplated it, in fact, as well as she could contemplate anything in her rather fuddled state. But his mocking smile said he was waiting for her to do just that. Except when making sure commoners stayed in their place, she hated doing anything someone else expected of her. And, she realized, she was feeling randy herself She'd decide later how far she intended to let him go. For the moment, she simply enjoyed herself And it wasn't as if she were the only woman in the Cellar whose com- d panion was feeling her up on the dance floor. It was not a place to which women who minded being rumpled in public commonly came. I can ed always blame it on the brandy, she thought. But she didn't really need to of blame it. on anything. She did as she pleased. No one could make her do as, anything else. 0 The music stopped. Krasta set her hand on the back of Valnu's head the and pulled his face down to hers. She kissed him, open-mouthed. He tasted of porter: bitter, but not so bitter as the wormwood in her brandy. Halfway through the kiss, she opened her eyes. Valnu was staning at her. He was so close, his features blurred, but she thought he looked ere astonished. She laughed, down deep in her throat. He broke the kiss and twisted away. Now she had no trouble reading his nd- expression. He was angry. Krasta laughed again. He must have realized he'd rage. gone from predator to prey, realized it and not cared for it at all. "You're t the a fire-breather, aren't you?" he said, his voice rougher than usual. arly od "What if I am?" Krasta tossed her head again, as she had back at the table. She pointed toward the musicians. "They're going to start again in a rninute. Do you want to dance some more, or have we already done everything we can do standing up?" Valnu did his best to rally. "Not quite everything," he answered, more self-collected now. Bold as brass, he reached out and cupped her breast through the fabric of her tunic. His thumb and forefinger unerringly found her nipple. He teased it for a few seconds, then let her go. 210 Harry Turtledove Maybe he hadn't understood how hot and reckless Krasta was feeli Maybe she hadn't realized it herself, not till those knowing fingers furt inflamed her. She reached out, too, at a lower level. Had he pulled off his trousers and lain down on the floor, she imi have mounted him then and there. Such things were said to happe the Cellar now and again, though Krasta had never seen them there. Valnu, after shaking himself like a wet hound, went back to the tabl( four or five long strides. Krasta followed him. Her cheeks burned. heart raced. She breathed quickly, as if she'd just run a long way. Valnu gulped the porter left in his mug. He was looking at Krasta a he'd never seen her before. "Brimstone and quicksilver," he mutte more to himself than to her. "Dragon-bitch." After what she'd drunk, she took it as a compliment: indeed, she ne thought to wonder whether it might be anything else. Her own gob smaller than the earthenware mug from which he'd drunk, held bra yet. She poured it down. An egg might have burst in her belly. warmth flowed out of it: to her face, to her breasts, to her loins. With a rumbling blast from the tuba player and a thunder of dru beats, the band started up again. The rhythm seemed to be inside her, ing her to the brim; the laced brandy kicked like a wild ass. As if fr very far away, Valnu asked, "Do you want to go out on the floor agai "No." Krasta shook her head. The room seemed to keep moving a she stopped. "Let's ride around the town in my cam-age - or even into the country." "In your carriage?" Valmi frowned. "What win the coachman thin "Who cares?" Krasta said gaily. "Powers above! He's only a coachmai Valnu silently clapped his hands. "Spoken like the true woman nobility you are," he exclaimed, and got to his feet. So did Krasta, ho ing- the process looked smoother to him than it felt to her. They retriev their cloaks from the little antechamberjust outside the main room - t night had its full share of autumn chill - then went upstairs and out in the darkness. That darkness was well-nigh absolute. Though no Algarvian dragons had yet appeared over Priekule, the city encaped itself in blac A good many camages waited outside the Cellar while their nob owners reveled the night away. Krasta had to call several times before could sort out which one was hers. I of P_ ed he Ito var ck. ble she INTo THE DARKNESS 211 "Where to, milady?" her driver asked when she and Valnu climbed up into the seat behind him. "Back to the mansion?" "No, no," Krasta said. "Just drive about for a while. If you happen to come on a road that leads out of the city - well, so much the better." The coachman stayed quiet longer than he should have. When at last he spoke, he said was, "Aye, milady. It shall be as you command." He clucked to the horses and flicked the reins. The carriage began to move. Krasta hardly noticed his words. Of course it would be as she com- manded. How could it be otherwise, when she was dealing with her own servitors? She turned to Valnu, a vague shape in the darkness beside her. She reached out for him as he was reaching out for her. The coachman paid no attention. He knew better than to pay attention ... or, at least, to be seen paying attention. Under the cover of their cloaks, Valnu's hand found the bone toggles that held her tunic closed. He undid a couple of them and reached inside the tunic to fondle her bare breast. Careless of the coachman, Krasta moaned. When her mouth met Valnu's this time, the kiss was so fierce, she tasted blood: his or hers, she could not tell. His hand slid out of her tunic. He rubbed at the crotch of her trousers. She thought she would burst like an egg then. Valnu chuckled. His hand dived under her waistband, His fingers, long and slim and clever, knew exactly where to go and exactly what to do when they got there. Krasta gasped and shuddered, for a moment blind with pleasure. Valnu chuckled again, as pleased with himself as he was with having pleased her. The horses plodded on, hooves clopping on cobbles, Stolid as the animals he drove, the coachman minded the reins. Krasta thought of ordering Valnu out of the carriage now that he'd given her what she wanted. But, sated and tipsy, she felt more generous than usual. She rubbed him through the wool of his trousers. After an abrupt inhalation, he murmured, "I do hope you won't make me explain myself to my laundryman." She laughed and rubbed harder. Nothing could have made her more inclined to do just that than his hoping she wouldn't. After a moment, though, still in that uncommonly kindly mood, she unbuttoned his fly and drew him forth. She stroked him some more. "Ahhh," he said softly. Had Krasta gone on for another minute or two, she would have made 212 Harry Turtledove Vahm explain himself to his laundryman: of that she had no doubt. Instead, she lowered her head, saying, "Here. I will give you a treat you could have only from a noblewoman." She took him in her mouth. His flesh was hot and smooth. His fingers tangled in her hair. Above her busy lips and tongue, he laughed. "You are quite a lot of woman, my sweet," he said, "but what you're doing there hasn't been a secret of the nobility for a long, long time, if it ever was. Why, only last week this pretty little shopgirl-" In spite of his hands, she raised up so suddenly that the back of her head caught him in the chin. "What?" she hissed as he yelped in pain. Fury filled her as quickly and completely as lubriiciousness had. Before he could even start to set himself to rights, she pushed him with all her strength. He had time for only a startled squawk before he tumbled out on to the cobbles. "Milady, what on earth -?" he began. "Shut up!" Krasta snarled. Careless of her left breast peeping out from the undone tunic, she leaned forward and tapped the driver on the shoulder. "Take me home this instant. Make your stupid beasts move or you'll be sorry for it, do you hear me?" "Aye, nulady," the coachman answered: not a word more, which was wise of him. He flicked the reins. After what sounded like surprised snorts, the horses moved up into' a trot. Krasta looked back over her shoulder. Valnu took a couple of steps in pursuit of the carriage, then gave up. He vanished in the darkness behind her. Absently, Krasta did up the toggles he had opened. She wiped her mouth on her sleeve, again and again. Disgust filled her, so much that she almost had to lean out of the carriage and vomit it forth into the road- way. It wasn't what she'd been doing; she'd done that before, and always been amused how such a small thing could make a man behave as if treacle filled his veins. But that her mouth had gone where a commoner's - a pretty little shop- girl's, Valnu had said - mouth went before ... She could imagine nothilig more revolting. She felt ritually unclean, like a man of the Ice People, who had accidentally slain his fetish amimal. After she got back to the mansion, she routed Bauska out of bed had the servant fetch her a bottle of brandy. She rinsed her mouth sever times, then imperiously thrust the bottle back. Bauska took it aw,1 INTo THE ARKNESS 213 without a word. Like the coachman, she'd learned better than to ask nuestions of her mistress With his comrades, Tealdo tramped along the wooden quay in the harbor of Imola toward the Ambuscade, from whose flagpole fluttered the Algarvian banner. All the army that had spent so long training was now filing aboard the ships that filled the harbor in the former Duchy of Ban'. Tealdo marveled to see the men all together. He marveled even more to see the ships A together. "We haven't put together a fleet like this for a cursed long time," he said over his shoulder to Trasone, who marched along behind him. "Not for a thousand vears the officers sav " his friend agreed "Silence in the ranks there!" Sergeant Panfilo bellowed. Someone fortunately, someone well away from Tealdo - made a noise that probably came from his mouth but sounded as if it had a different origin. Panfilo stormed off to see if he could catch and terrorize the nuscreant. Up the gangplank Tealdo went. His feet thudded on the timbers of the deck. The sailors scurrvina around there and the men who traveled the lines of the rigging like outsized spiders did not stnike him as an ordinary naval crew. That was only fair - they weren't an ordinary naval crew, nor anything close to it. Every one of them was a highly trained yachtsman, But that art was no longer obsolete, thanks to the ingenuity o Algarve's generals and admirals. Tealdo wished he would be able tc watch the great sails fill with wind as the fleet weighed anchor. Instead he went down to a poorly lit compartment with whose cramped dimen- sions he was all too familiar. There he and his company would stay til their journey ended ... or till something went wrong Maybe Captain Larbino had something similar on his mind, for h said, "Men, what we do here tonight will go a long way toward winnin the war for Algarve. The Sibians shouldn't realize we're corming till w( shop up on their doorstep - we'll catch them with their kilts down Nobody has gone to war with a fleet of sailing ships for hundreds of years They'll never expect it, and their mages likely won't be able to give 'err. much warning, either. If we sail over a ley line ... so what? We don draw any energy from it, so they won't notice us. We'll be as safe as w( I 214 Harry Turtledove would on dry land till we get into Tirgoviste harbor. Make yourselves comfortable and enjoy the trip." Tealdo made himself as comfortable as he could, which wasn't very. He listened to more soldiers tramping into their assigned compartments, and to sailors running around and shouting things the thick oak timbers that surrounding him kept him from understanding. But tone carried, even If words didn't. "They sound like they're having a mighty good time, don , t they?" he said to Trasone. "Why shouldn't they?" Trasone answered. "Once they get us to Sibiu, their job is done. They can sit back and drink wine. We're the ones who get to pay the bill after that." He wasn't quite being fair. If the Sibs got the chance, they'd blaze at ships as well as soldiers. Before Tealdo could point that out, the motion of the Ambuscade changed. The pitching from bow to stem became more emphatic, and the ship began to roll from side to side as well. "We're off," Tealdo said. His stomach took the ship's motion in stride. Before long, though, he discovered that, as painstaking as the company's combat rehearsals had been, they hadn't covered everything. Several soldiers started puking. The compartment did have buckets to cope with such emergencies, but the emergency often arrived before the -bucket did. In spite of everyone's best efforts, the compartment became a very unpleasant place. The amused contempt the yachtsmen showed as they carried buckets away did not endear them to their passengers. "If I could move, I'd kill those bastards," a sufferer groaned. Nobody could move much. The compartment held too many men for that. Tealdo hoped no one would heave up dinner on to his shoes. Pa~t that, he squatted and chatted with the men around him and took breatlis as shallow as he could. Time dragged on. He supposed it had grown dark outside. Hc couldn't have proved it, not down here. Every so often, someone fed L lantern oil. Those flickering flames were all the light he and his conuades had. For A he knew, they were below the waterline, which would have made portholes a bad idea. He wished lie were a horse or a unicorn, so he could sleep while he wasn't lying down. A couple of soldiers did start to snore. He envicd them. Because he envied them, he laughed all the louder when -i roll "to t S ts; or ast s ave INTo THE DARKNESS 215 bigger than usual made them topple over. After what seemed like forever, the Ambuscade heeled sharply. Sailors shouted in excitement. "Get ready, boys," Sergeant Panfilo said. "I think the shop is about to open for business." While Captain Larbino was saying the same thing in more elegant words, the Ambuscade proved him right by thudding against a quay - Tealdo hoped that was what had happened, at any rate, and that the ship hadn't struck a rock instead. The door to the compartment flew open. "Out! Out! Out!" a yachtsman screamed. Out the company went, and up the narrow stair-way that led to the deck. "Nobody falls!" Panfilo bellowed. "Nobody falls, or he answers to me." And nobody did fall. The men had rehearsed going up stairs like these so many times, they might have been stairs to the houses in which they'd grown up. Cold, fresh air smelling of sea salt and smoke slapped Tealdo in the face. Not far away, another Algarvian ship burned brightly, lighting up the darkened harbor of Tirgoviste. Tealdo hoped the soldiers had been able to get off the ship. Every man counted in this assault. If the Algarvians did not conquer Sibiu, they would not be going home again. After that, he stopped worrying about anything except what he was supposed to do. He followed the man in front of him over the gangplank and on to the quay. That too went off as it should have done. No one fell into the water. Had anybody done so, the weight of his kit would quickly have dragged him under. "Move!" Captain Larbino shouted. "We have to move fast! Don't stand there gaping. We've still got the headquarters building to take." No one was standing around gaping, either. That would have been handing the Sibians an invitation to blaze the men. Nobody with sticks had set up at the landward end of the quay, and Tealdc, and his comrades didn't propose to wait till someone did. "Easier than practice, so far," he said. "So far, maybe," Trasone answered. "But nobody who got killed in practice stayed dead. Won't be like that here." Sure enough, the Sibians began to wake up. They started blazing at the invaders from buildings by the port. But it was too late then, with Algarvians flooding into Tirgoviste from all their ships. Tealdo wondered ~0\v things were going at the other Sibian ports. Well, he hoped. Hope was all he could do. 1 216 Harry Turtledove Shouts rose, up ahead. He could understand most of them. Sibian very close to the southern dialects of Algarvian, and not tremendous removed from his own more northerly accent. The Sibs were ye about stopping his pals and him. "Good luck," he snarled, a carnivo grin on his face. He hadn't realized how meticulously his superiors had reproduce environs of Tirgoviste harbor at the rehearsal sites near Imola. Sibians popped up to blaze at his comrades and him, they did so in places from which Algarvian "defenders" had fought during those I tedious practice runs. Tealdo knew where they would be almost be they got there. He knew where to take cover, and where to aim his s He didn't have to think. He just had to do, and to go on doing. "Keep moving!" Larbino yelled. "Don't let them gather themse Don I t let them make a stand. If we press them hard now, they'll br We have to keep them back on their heels!" "Listen to the captainl" Sergeant Panfilo bellowed, almost in Teal ear. "He knows what he's talking about." Panfilo shook his head spoke again, this time in a much lower voice: "Never thought I'd say about an officer." The strongpoint Larbino's company had been trained to cap turned out to be the naval offices at Tirgoviste. Till he flopped d behind some rubble not far away, Tealdo hadn't known what the ta was, nor cared much, either. His superiors told him what to do, an went out and did it. The arrangement struck him as equitable. "Covering blazes!" Larbino roared, and Tealdo aimed his stick second-story window from which a Sibian was liable to do some blaz of his own. No sooner had he done so than he saw, or thought he s motion behind that window. His stick sent a beam into the offices. Sibian blazed at the Algarvians from that spot, so Tealdo concluded hadn't been imagining things after all. Under the protection of the storm of blazes, a couple of men ran ward and set an egg against the iron door of the naval offices.'One them fell as he dashed away from the doors. His comrade stopped picked him up and started to carry him toward something more safety. Then he too went down. Tealdo cursed to see such courage wasted. He hoped somebody try to get him away if he got hurt. He hoped whoever it was would h e en the ture Own target nd he at a zing e saw, es. No dcd he an for- One of ed and ore like would uld have INTc) THE DARKNESS 217 better luck than the fellow from the egg crew, too. The egg burst then. Tealdo blinked frantically, trying to clear away the fuzzy, glowing green-purple spot in the center of his field of vision. When he could see straight ahead again, he whooped: the doors had not been able to withstand the energies unleashed against them. One leaned drunkenly on its hinges, while the other had been hurled into the build- ing, with luck smashing a good many Siblans in the corridor behind it. "Forward!" Larbino and Panfilo cn'ed the order at the same time. Larbinc, added "Follow me!" and dashed toward the opening torn in the naval offices. Tealdo scrambled to his feet and did follow the captain. An officer who 1--d from the front could pull his men after him: that was a lesson as old as war. An officer who led from the front was also horribly likely to die before his time: that was a lesson driven home during the Six Years' War. It held here, too. Larbino got through the niven doorway, but no more than a couple of strides farther. Then he crumpled bonelessly, blazed tbrorigh the head. But the soldiers on his heels killed the Sibian who'd blazed him. Howling like wolves and calling Larbino's name along with King Mezentio's, the Algarvians fought their way into and through the naval offices. "Hold it night there!" Tealdo screamed as a Sibian humied toward a window to escape. Firelight coming in through the window showed a lot of -old braid on the fellow's sleeves: an officer, but one intent on leaving the front, not leading from it. For a moment, Tealdo thought he would try to jump out the window. That would have been a mistake, a particularly fatal mistake. The Sibian officer must have realized it. He raised his hands. I am Count Delfinu; ray rank is commodore," he said in slow, clear Algarvian. I expect to be used with all the dignity due my rank and station." "That's nice," Tealdo said. He might have to act polite around his own nobles. He didn't care a fig for the fancy tides foreigners carried, though. Gesturing with the stick, he went on, "You come along with me, pal. Somebody'll figure out what to do with you." A captive com- modore was an excuse plenty good enough to let him leave the fighting for a little while. And if the rest of the fight was going as smoothly as this ... Tealdo laughed. "Come on, pal," he repeated. "Tirgoviste's ours. Way it looks to me, your whole cursed kingdom's ours." 218 Harry Turtledove Comelu cursed. He and Efori'el had been out on a routine patrol, find ing nothing much. When the leviathan brought him back towarc Tirgoviste harbor, though . . . He cursed again, cursed and wept mingling his salty tears with the salt sea. "The harbor is theirs," he groaned. "The city is theirs." Fires burning up in Tirgoviste silhouetted the masts and spars of the Algarvian invasion fleet. Cornelu did not need long to figure out what King Mezentio's men had done. In an abstract way, he admired their nerve. Had a couple of Sibian ley-line cruisers happened on that fleet of sailing ships, they could have worked a ghastly slaughter. But they hadn't. The galleons, or whatever the old-fashioned name for them was, had ghosted across the ley lines with no one the wiser. The rest of the Algarvian navy, no doubt, would follow now. "Costache," Cornelu said: another groan. All he could do was hope his wife remained safe, and the child to whom she would soon give birth. He didn't think the Algarvians would deliberately outrage her - were they not civilized men? - but anything could happen during a battle. Efori'el rolled a little in the water, so she could look up at him from one large, dark eye. The leviathan let out what sounded like a puzzle' grunt. Cornelu understood why: he wasn't behaving as he usually did, when the two of them returned to their home port. Eforiel didn't understand that, if she blithely swam into Tirgoviste harbor now", Cornelu would get blazed and she would either have eggs tossed at her or would be captured and pressed into the service of King Mezentio' men. Instead of having her go into the harbor, Corneln started to guide her toward a little beach just outside Tirgoviste. There he could slip off her back, gain the shore, and ... And what? he asked himself What 1 he do then? Go into town, rescue his wife, bring her back to Efori flee? The hero of an adventure romance might have managed th pausing somewhere in there to make love to her, too. In real life, tunately, Cornelu had no notion how to bring off such a coup. If he couldn't rescue Costache, could he head inland and J oin what- e . Ll ever resistance to the Algarvian invaders might be brewing there? wondered how strong that resistance could be. Algarve was a much bi ger kingdom than Sibiu, and boasted a much, much bigger army. Si ~ INTo THE DARKNESS iu 219 had relied upon her ships to keep her safe, and Mezentio had found a way to hoodwink them. Besides, as a soldier Comelu was nothing out of the ordinary. He was far more useful to King Burebistu as part of a team with Efoniel than by himself. He wished the leviathan had several eggs in the harness under her belly. Were that so, he might have done the invaders some real damage. Eforiel grunted again, sensing his indecision: unlike dragons, leviathans liked men and understood them pretty well. "I need to know more, 11 Comelu said, almost as if he were talking to Costache. "That's what I need more than anything else. For all I know - powers above grant it be so - the invasion has failed on the other four islands. If it has, I can help reconquer Tirgoviste." He patted the leviathan, steering her west toward Facacem, the island closest to his own. Eforiel obeyed, but more slowly than she might have. Had she been able to speak, she might have said something like, Are you sure this is what you want me to do? She was even more skeptical of any- thing that smacked of innovation than the briiniest old salt in the Sibian navy. Comelu wished with all his heart that some better course lay before him. He could see none, though. With no chance to be useful around Timoviste, he had to hope the island and port of Facacem remained in Siblan hands. If they did, well and good. If not ... He would not let him- self worry about that now. Dawn broke while Eforiel was still swimming west. Dragons flew high overhead - far too high for him to tell whether they bore Sibian colors or those of Algarve. None of them swooped down to drop an egg on the leviathan. For that, at least, Cornelu was grateful. It was the first thing he'd found for which he might be grateful since discovering his kingdom invaded. Before long, he became convinced it was the last thing for which he might be grateful for some time to come. Before he saw the hills at the center of Facaceni rise over the horizon, he spotted a great cloud of smoke towering higher than those hills. Unless Facaceni had suffered a natural disaster, it had suffered disaster at the hands of the Algarvians. Cornelia had never wished so hard for an earthquake. But wishes, no niatter how fervent, were sorcerous nullities. Cornelu had no skill in magecraft, any more than a mage was likely to have skill in niding 220 Harry Turtledove leviathans. Learning to do one thing well was hard enough in this world; learning to do more than one thing well often pressed the limits of the possible. Not that even magecraft could annul what had already happened. As Efori'el drew Cornelu ever nearer the harbor of Facacem, he saw for him- self that King Mezentio's men were there before him. Sailing ships had emptied soldiers out on to the quays, as they had at Tirgoviste - as they had, probably, at every Sibian port. And, just as Cornelu had guessed, the rest of the Algarvian navy had followed the invasion fleet south. Algarvian and Sibian ships were tossing eggs at each other outside the harbor, and blazing with powerful sticks. Every time a beam went low, a great cloud of steam rose from the ocean. Eforiel shuddered beneath Cornelu. She paid no attention to the beams, but eggs bursting in the water frightened her. She had reason to fear, too; a burst too near might kill her. Cornelu dared approach Facacem no closer. A puff of steam rising only a couple of hundred yards away warned that he might already have come too close. It came not from a stick but from another leviathan spouting. A moment later, leviathan and rider broke the surface. "Who are you?" the rider called to Cornelu. Was he speaking Algarvian or Sibian? With only three words to go on, Comelu had trouble being sure. "Who are you?" he called back. "Give me the signal." He did not know what the signal was, but hoped to learn more by the way the other leviathan rider responded. Learn he did, for the fellow said, "Mezentio!" "Mezentio!" Cornelu answered, as if he too were an Algarvian, and delighted to find another one in this part of the world. But, while his mouth spoke the name with every sign of gladness, his hand delivered a different message to Eforiel: attack! The leviathan's muscles surged smoothly beneath him as she arrowed through the water toward the other rider and his mount. Calling Mezentio's name must have lulled the Algarvian, for he let Cornelu aiid Eforiel approach without taking any precautions against them. He learned his mistake too late. Eforiel's pointed snout rammed his leviathan's side, not far behind the creature's left flipper. The impact almost pitched Cornelu off Eforiel's back, though he was as well strapped and braced as he could have been. The Algarvian leviathan twisted and INTo THE DARKNESS ad an. the to ach that from roke o on, 'Give learn n, and e his ered a rrowed Calling elu and med his impact strapped isted and 221 jerked in startled agony, much as a man might have done if unexpectedly hit in the pit of the stomach. After delivering that first blow with her jaws closed, Efoniel opened them and bit the other leviathan several times. Blood turned seawater crimson. Cornelu laughed to see the Algarvian rider splashing in the ocean, separated from his mount. Efoniel did the Algarvian no harm. She had not been trained to hunt men in the water - too much likelihood of her turning on her own rider, should some mischance have separated the two of them. Had circumstances differed, Cornelu might have captured the other rider. But he doubted he had any place on Sibiu to which he could bring the Algarvian for interrogation. And he spied other spouts not far away. He had to assume they came from Algarvian leviathans. When he ordered Eforiel to break off the attack, he thought for a moment she would refuse to obey him. But training triumphed over instinct. She allowed the leviathan she'd wounded to flee into the depths of the sea. Cornelu did not think a Sibian-tramed animal would have abandoned its rider like that - but the Algarvians, as he'd seen to his sor- row, had tn*cks of their own up their sleeves. And they had these leviathans. "Mezentio!" their riders called, hurry- ing toward the commotion at least one of them had spotted. Comelu did not think he could fool them as he had the first Algarvian he'd encountered; few tricks worked twice. Nor, being outnumbered, was he ashamed to flee. He hoped to escape them and then go on look- ing for Sibians still resisting the invaders. In war, though, what one hopes and what one gets are often far removed from each other. The Algarvians pursuing Efoniel were better riders than most of their countrymen, and mounted on sturdier leviathans. They chased Comelu far to the south of Facacem, and seemed intent on driving him from Sibian waters altogether. To make matters worse, a dragon flew high over Eforiel, helping the Algarvians and their leviathans keep track of her. The dragonflier was sure to be speaking into a crystal. If one of the riders was likewise equipped ... If that was so, the Algarvians had devoted a great deal of effort to tying their forces togethcr in ways no one had thought of before. Another dragon came flapping up behind the first. This one carried a couple of eggs slung under its belly, and did its best to drop them on 222 Harry Turtledove Eforiel. The flier's aim, though, was not so good as it might have been. Both eggs fell well short of their intended target; one, in fact, came closer to hitting the Algarvian leviathan riders than it did to Cornelu. He hoped that would make the enemy lose him, but it didn't. Cursing the Algarvians, he kept Eforiel headed southeast, the only direction in which they permitted him to travel. He shook his fist at them. "Force me to Lagoas, will you?" he shouted. Lagoas was neutral. If he came ashore there, he would be interned, and out of the fighting tin the war was over: a better fate than surrendering, but not much. He cursed the Lagoans even more bitterly than he did the Algarvians. In the Six Years' War, Lagoas had fought alongside Sibiu, but this time around her merchants had loved their profits too well to feel like shedding any blood. And then, as if thinking of Lagoans had conjured them up, a patrol boat came speeding along a ley line from out of the south. He could have escaped it. The ocean was wide, and the ship could not leave the line of energy from which it drew its power. But, if he was going to be interned, sooner struck him as being as good as later. This way, as opposed to his coming ashore on their soil, the Lagoans might heed his wishes about Eforiel. And so he waved and had the leviathan rear in the water and generally made himself as conspicuous as he could. The Algarvian leviathan riders turned and headed back toward Sibiu. Comelu shook his fist at them again, then waited for the Lagoan warship to approach. "Who might you be?" an officer called from the deck in what might have been intended for either Sibian or Algarvian. Cornelu gave his name, his rank, and his kingdom. To his surprise, the Lagoans burst into cheers. "Well met, friend!" several of them said. "Friend?" he echoed in surprise. "Friiend, aye," the officer answered in his accented Sibian. "Lagoas wars with Algarve now. Had you no heard? When Mezentio your country invaded, King Vitor declares war. We all friends together now, aye?" "Aye," Cornelu said wearily. Skarnu stood up before his company and said the words that had to be said: "Men, the redheads have gone and invaded Sibiu. You'll have heard that already, I suppose." He waited for nods, and got them. "You ask INTo THE DARKNESS 223 me," he went on, "they were fools. Lagoas is a bigger danger to them than Sibiu ever could have been. But if the Algarvians weren't fools, they wouldn't be Algarvians, eh?" He got more nods, and even a couple of smiles. He would have been gladder of those smiles had they come from the best soldiers in the com- pany, not the happy-go-lucky handful who in the morning refused to worry about the afternoon, let alone tomorrow. "We can't swim over to Sibiu to help the islanders," he said, "so we have to do the next best thing. King Mezentio must have pulled a lot of e his soldiers out of the line here when he invaded Sibiu. That means there t won't be enough men left in the redheads' works to hold us back when e we hit them. We are going to break through, and we are going to go rampaging right into the Algarvian rear." 01 Some of the men who'd smiled before clapped their hands and cheered. So did a few others - youngsters, mostly. Most of the soldiers VC 0" just stood silently. Skarnu had studied the Algarvian fortifications himself, ed, studied them till he knew the ones in front of him like the lines on his his palm. As long as they held any men at all, they would be hard to break out through. He knew it. Most of the men knew it, too. But he had his orders and about what to tell them. He also had his pride. He said, "Remember, men, you won't be going iu. anywhere I haven't gone myself, because I'll be out in front of you every ship step of the way. We'll do all we can for our king and kingdom." He raised k in his voice to a shout: "King Gainibu and victory!" "King Gainibu!" the men echoed. "Victory!" They cheered enthusi- the astically. Why not? Cheering cost them nothing and exposed them to no danger. Seeing that Skarnu had finished, Sergeant Raunu strode out in front of goas the company. He glanced at Skarnu for permission to speak. Skarnu your nodded. The company would have got on fine without him, but he now, couldn't have run it without Raunu. The veteran underofficer affected not to know that. Skarnu understood perfectly well that the pose was an affectation. He wondered how many company officers really believed to be heard ou ask their sergeants thought them indispensable. Too many, odds were. Raunu said, "Boys, we're lucky. You know it, and I know it. A lot of officcrs would send us forward but stay in a hole themselves. If we won, th y'd take the credit. If we lost, we'd get the blame - only we'd be dead 224 Harry Turtledove and they'd try again with another company. The captain's not like that We've all seen as much. Let's give him a cheer now, and let's fight like madmen for him tomorrow." "Captain Skarnu!" the men shouted. Skarnu waved to them, feeling foolish. He was used to accepting the deference of commoners because of his blood. Like his sister Krasta, he'd taken it for granted. The defer- ence he got here in the field was different. He'd earned it. It made him proud and embarrassed at the same time. "Whatever we can do, sir, we'll do tomorrow," Raunu said. "I'm sure of it," Skarnu said. That was a polite commonplace. He started to add something to it, then stopped. Sometimes Raunu, if given the chance to talk, came out with things he wouldn't have otherwise, things an officer would have had trouble learning any other way. This proved to be one of those times. "Do you really think we'll break the Algarvian line tomorrow, sir?" the sergeant said. "We've been ordered to do it," Skarnu said. "I hope we can do it." He went no further than that. "Mm." Raunu's wrinkles refolded themselves into an expression less forbidding than the one he usually wore. "Sir, I hope we can do it, too But if there's not much chance ... Sir, I saw a lot of officers with a lot of courage get themselves killed for nothing during the Six Years' War. It'd be a shame if that happenedto you before you figured out what wa what. " "I see." Skarnu nodded brightly. "After I figure out what's what, will be all right for me to get myself killed for nothing." "No, sir." Raunu shook his head. "After you know what' s w you'll know better than to go rushing ahead and get yourself killed nothing. " Skarnu quoted doctrine: "The only way to make an attack to go into it confident of success." succeed is "Aye, sir." Raunu frowned again. "The only trouble is, sometimes that doesn't help, either." Skarnu shrugged. Raunu looked at him, shook his head, and -W e off. Skarnu understood what the veteran was trying to tell him. Understanding didn't matter. He had his orders. His company Id break through the Algarvian line ahead or die trying. All through the night, egg-tossers hurled destruction at the INTo THE DARKNESS 225 positions. Dragons flew overhead, dropping more eggs on the redheads. Skamu. had mixed feelings about all that. On the one hand, slain enemy soldiers and wrecked enemy works would make the attack easier. On the 9 other, the Valmierans couldn't have done a better job of announcing se where that attack would go in if they'd hung out a sign. r- The Algarvians made little reply to the eggs raining down. Maybe in they're all dead, Skarnu thought hopefully. He couldn't make himself believe it, try as he would. He led his men to the ends of the approach trenches they'd dug over Be the previous couple of days. That new digging might also have warned the en Algarvians an attack was coming. But Skarmi and his men would not have ise, to cross so much open ground to close with the enemy when the assault began, and so he reluctantly decided it was likely to be worthwhile. eak "This is how we did it in the Six Years' War," Ramm said as the soldiers huddled in the trenches, waiting for the whistles that would order them forward. "We licked the redheads then, so we know we can do it again, right?" less Some of the youngsters under Skarmi's command grinned and nodded too. at the veteran sergeant. They were too young to know about the grue- a lot some casualties Valrm'era had endured in that victory. Raunu deliberately War. didn't mention those. The men hadn't suffered badly in this war, not yet, t was not least because their leaders did remember the slaughters of the Six Years' War and had avoided repeating them. Now the risk seemed at, it I r ecd is ctimes walked him. would garvian acceptable ... to men who weren't facing it themselves. Off in the west, behind Skarnu, the sky went from black to gray to pink. Peering over the dirt heaped up in front of the approach trenches, he saw the enemy's field fortifications had taken a fearful battering. He dared hope that no Algarvian position during the Six Years' War had been so thoroughly smashed up. He said as much to Raunu, who also stuck his head up to examine the ground ahead. The sergeant answered, "Just where it looks like there couldn't be even one of the bastards left alive, that's where you'll find whole caravans full of 'em, and they'll all be doing their best to blaze you down." Raunu had been loud and enthusiastic while heartening the corrimon soldiers in the company. He spoke quietly to his superior, not wanting to dilute the effect he'd had on the men. 226 Harry Turtledove More eggs and still more eggs fell on the Algarvian entrenchments an forts. And then, without warning, they stopped falling. Skarnu pulled brass whistle from his trouser pocket and blew a long, echoing blast, on of hundreds ringing out along several miles of battle line. "For Valmiera! he cried. "For King Gainibu!" He scrambled out of the approach trenc and trotted toward the Algarvians' works. "Valmlera!" his men shouted, and followed him out into the open "Gainibu!" He looked to either side. Thousands of Valmierans, thou sands upon thousands, stormed west. It was a sight to make any soldie proud of his countrymen. Only aftu, hundred more yards, Skarnu thought. Then we'll be in amo the redheads, and then they'll be ours. But already flashes ahead warned tha some Algarvians had survived the pounding the Valn-tierans had give them. More and more enemy soldiers began blazing at Skarnu and hi comrades. Men started falling, some without a sound, others shrieking they were wounded. The Algarvians had endured all the eggs the Valmierans tossed at them without responding - till this moment, when the men attacking them were most vulnerable. And now they rained eggs down on the Valmierans. Skamu found himself on the ground without any clear memory of how he'd got there. One moment, he'd been upright. The next - He scrambled to his feet. His trousers were torn. His tunic was out at the elbow. He wasn't bleeding, or didn't think he was. Lucky, he thou He waved to show his men he was all right, and looked back over Iiis shoulder to see how they were doing. Even as he did so, a couple of them went down. They hadn't come very far - surely not halfway - but he'd lost a lot of them. If he kept losing them at that rate, he wouldn't have any me left by the time he got to the forwardmost Algarvian trenches. He probat wouldn't live to get to those trenches himself, an unpleasant afterthou to have. The headlong charge was simply too expensive to be bome. "T squads!" he shouted. "Blaze and move by squads!" Half his men - half the men he had left - dove into such cover as th could find - mostly the holes burst eggs had dug in the ground. The re raced by them. Then they flattened out and blazed at the Algarvians whil' the others rose and dashed past. Little by little, they worked their INTo THE DARKNESS pen. thou oldier among d that given nd his king as as out at thought. over his of them he'd lost any men probably erthought orne. "By vcr as they d. The Test lans while their way 227 toward the trenches from which the redheads were blazing at them. Skarmi took shelter in a hole himself, waiting for his next chance to advance. He looked around, hoping the order he'd had to give hadn't slowed his company too badly. What he saw left him wide-eyed with dis- may. As many Valmierans were running back toward their own lines as were still going forward against the enemy. Of the ones still advancing, most paid no attention to tactics that might have cut their losses. They kept moving up tin they went down. When they could bear no more, they broke and fled. "You see, sir?" Raunu shouted from a hole not far away. "This is how I feared it would be." "What can we do?" Skarnu asked. "We aren't going to break through their lines," Raunu answered. "We aren't even going to get into their lines - or if we do, we won't come out again. Best we can do now is hang tight here, hurt 'em a bit, and get back to where we started from after nightfall. If you order me for- ward, though, sir, I'll go." "No," Skarnu said. "What point to that but getting us killed to no pur- pose?" He assumed that, if he ordered Raunu forward, he would have to try to advance, too. "This is what you warned me about before the attack began, isn't it?" "Aye, sir. Good to see you can recognize it," Raunu said. "I only wish our commanders could." Skarnu started to reproach the sergeant for speaking too freely. He stopped with the words unspoken. How could R,aunu have spoken too freely when all he did was tell the truth? Leofsig still retained the tin mess kit he'd been issued when mustered into King Pencla's levy. As captives went, that made him relatively lucky. Forthwegian soldiers who'd lost their kits had to make do with bowls that held less. The Algarvians might have issued their own kits to men who lacked them, but that didn't seem to have entered their minds. What had crossed their minds was carefully counting the captives in each barracks in the encampment before those captives got anything in their mess kits or bowls. Leofsig would not have bet that the Algarvian guards could count to ten, even using their fingers. The endless recounts to which the captives had to submit argued against it, at any rate. Every so often, a captive or two really did turn up missing. That meant K` 228 Harry Turtledove the redheads tore the encampment apart till they found out how the in had disappeared. It also meant a week of half rations for the escapee barracksmates. No one got fat on full rations. Half rations were slo starvation. Half rations were also an argument for betraying anyo thinking of getting away. This morning, everything seemed to add up. "Powers above praised," Leofslg muttered. He was cold and tired and hungry; standi in formation in front of the barracks was not his idea of a good tim Standing in line and waiting for the meager breakfast the cooks wou dole out didn't strike him as delightful, either. Eventually, though, he get food in his belly, which came close to making the wait worthwhile Plop! The sound of a large ladle of mush landing in his mess kit w about as appetizing as the stuff itself The mush was mostly wheat po ridge, with cabbage and occasional bits of salt fish or pork mixed in. T captives ate it breakfast, dinner, and supper. It was never very good. Th morning, it smelled worse than usual. Leofsig ate it anyhow. If it made him sick - and it did make people sic every so often - he'd go to the infirmary. And if anybody claimed he w malingering, he'd throw up in the wretch's lap. The handful of Kaumans in his barracks ate in a small knot by the selves, as they usually did. He would sometimes join them. So would few of his fellow Forthwegians. Most, though, wanted nothing to d with the blonds. And a few, like Merwit, still stirred up trouble eve chance they got. "Hey, you!" Merwit said now. Leofsig looked up from his mush. Sur enough, Merwit was staring his way with a smile that made him loo neither friendly nor attractive. "Aye, you, yellow-hair lover," the bu captain went on. "You going on latrine duty after breakfast? That'd gi you the chance to hang around with your pals?" "You ought to try it yourself, Merwit," Leofsig answered. "There' nobody else I know who's half so full of shit." Merwit's eyes went big and wide. He and Leofsig had quarreled Fefore but Leofsig hadn't given back insult for insult tin this moment. Carefu Merwit set down his own mess kit. "You're going to pay for that," he sa in matter-of-fact tones. He charged forward like a behemoth. Leofslg kicked him in the belly. It was like kicking a plank. Me grunted, but he slammed one fist into Leofsig's nibs and the other into top of Leofsig's head. He'd meant to hit him in the face, but Leofsig ducked. Merwit howled then. With any luck at all, he'd broken a Being smaller and lighter, Leofsl knew he'd need all the help of tha sorthecould et. He tried to end the fight in a hurry by kneeingMerwi in the crotch, but Merwit twisted away and took the knee on the hip. H( seized Leofsig in a bearhug. Leofsig knocked his feet out from under him Thev went down toizether, each doina the other as much damage witf "Halting! You halting!" somebody shouted in accented Forthwegian Leofsig did nothing of the kind, having a well-founded suspicion tha Merwit wouldn't. "You halting!" This time, the command had teeth That must have convinced Merwit because he stopped trying to work mayhem on Leofsig. Leofsig gave him one more inconspicuous elbow then pushed him away and got to his feet His nose was bleeding. A couple of his front teeth felt loose but they were all there. None was even broken - pure luck, and he knew it. He looked over at Merwit. Merwit looked as if he'd been in a fight one of his eyes was swollen shut, and he had a big bruise on the othe cheek. Leofsig felt as if he'd been pummeled with boulders. He hopec [he Algarvian guards who'd stopped the brawl were shaking thel heads. "Stupid, stupid Forthwegians," one of them said, more in sorrow Now you seeing just how stupid you being Come!' themselves Sometimes without rhyme or reason Leofsig could see the chose to make examples of them. He eased a little when he saw they were taking him and Merwit to Brigadier Cynfrid, the senior Forthwegian officer in camp, rather than to their own commandant. Cynfrid had far "What have we here?" the brigadier asked, looking up from some paperwork. With his gray hair and snowy mustache and beard he seemed more a kindly grandfather than a soldier. Had he been a better soldier - ha~ a lot of Forthwec~an commanders Ieen better soldiers - he miolt not 01 Harry Turtledove have ended up in a captives' camp, but might instead have kept th going. "These two, they fighting," one of the Algarvian guards said. "Oh, aye, I can see that," Cynfrid said. "The question is, why they fighting?" The guard gave back an extravagant Algarvian shru that declared he not only didn't know but found beneath him the i wondering why Forthwegians did anything. The brigadier sighed dently having encountered that attitude before. He examined Leofs Merwit. "What have you men got to say for yourselves?" "Sir, this stinking Kaunian-lover called me a filthy name," said, his voice dripping with righteous innocence and indignation. sick of it, so when he started the fight, I did my best to give him for." "I didn't start the fight," Leofsig exclaimed. "He did! And he's, calling me names since we got here - youjust heard him do it again I finally called him one back. He didn't like that so much. Most are better at giving it out than taking it." "Conflicting stories," Cynfrid said with another sigh. He glance toward the guards. "I don't suppose you gentlemen know who di the fight?" The redheads laughed, not so much at the idea that should know, but at the notion that they might care. The Forthw brigadier sighed yet again. "Any chance of witnesses?" Now Leofsig had all he could do not to start laughing himself. low captives wanted as little to do with the guards as they coul would make themselves scarce and deny seeing anything ... or wo of them? Slowly, he said, "Sir, I think the Kaunians in my barracks tell the truth about what went on." "They'd lick your arse for you, you mean, like you Merwit snarled, his eyes blazing. Leofsig had succeeded in gaining the guards' attention. e nearly sure he wanted it. To Cynfrid, one of the Algarvians Kaunians, they is no to being trusted, eh?" "No, probably not," the Forthwegian brigadier said, "altliOUI haven't done nearly so much to Forthweg as you Algarvians, xou you think?" If the Algarvians thought any such thing, their faces didn't With a dismissive gesture, the one who did most of the talking said.